Id | Vlad | Saved | Scrape Time | Status | Scrape Result | Original Ad | Adarchiveid | Creative Links | Title | Body | Cta Type | Link Url | Pageid | Page Name | Page Profile Uri | Page Like Count | Collationcount | Collationid | Currency | Enddate | Entitytype | Fevinfo | Gatedtype | Hasuserreported | Hiddensafetydata | Hidedatastatus | Impressionstext | Impressionsindex | Isaaaeligible | Isactive | Isprofilepage | Cta Text | Pageinfo | Pageisdeleted | Pagename | Reachestimate | Reportcount | Ad Creative | Byline | Caption | Dynamic Versions | Effective Authorization Category | Display Format | Link Description | Link Url | Page Welcome Message | Creation Time | Page Profile Picture Url | Page Entity Type | Page Is Profile Page | Instagram Actor Name | Instagram Profile Pic Url | Instagram Url | Instagram Handle | Is Reshared | Version | Branded Content | Current Page Name | Disclaimer Label | Page Is Deleted | Root Reshared Post | Additional Info | Ec Certificates | Country Iso Code | Instagram Branded Content | Spend | Startdate | Statemediarunlabel | Actions |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
2,222,093 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2220364}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | âWhere the f-k is she?â I hear the Beta scream. Oh no, my ex-mate Beta Kyle is looking for me and trying to torture me again. I groan and get to my feet, grabbing the cleaning basket and taking it with me. The moment Beta Kyle sees me, he strides towards me and his hand slices against my cheek. It hurts more than usual but still, I don't make sound. Years of experience has taught me to do so. âAlpha Trey and I are expecting company and you still have not cleaned the office like you were askedd.â Beta Kyle spits at me. I nod my head and my hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If I could just find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make my day. âWe are trying to make a good impression on Alpha Dane. Do you not understand how important it is for us to join ourselves with his pack?!â I donât answer and keep my eyes low. I know it's a trick, to try and get me to say something so that he can give himself a reason to punish me. Alpha Dane, I had only ever heard rumours about him. He was a ruthless man, a Wolf feared by others. He didnât mess around and he had the largest pack. âHe is the Alpha of Black Shadow, the biggest pack in the world, we need him!â Beta Kyle continues. He places his hands on my shoulders, digging his nails into my thinning skin and turns me around, kicking me in the back as he shoves me towards the office. âUseless f-king Wolf.â He mutters as he moves away. Quietly closing the door, I lean back against the door, observing the already clean office. There was nothing out of place, it looked perfectly fine for a meeting. Closing my eyes, I slide down to the floor. I hated this house. I thought I could finally escape when I turned eighteen, but four years later, here I still am, a slave in my own home. Doing all the dirty tasks for my brother, Alpha Trey and the pack. While my ex mate, Beta Kyle waltzes around reminding me of how worthless I am. Someone clears their throat and I freeze, I thought I was alone. Leaning forward, I see a handsome man sitting in a chair, just around the corner. A foot propped up on his knee as he nurses a glass of drink. His short hair is dark and his eyes are a deep crimson colour, that donât quite look right. They suddenly shift to me and I throw myself back against the door as my heart pounded. âIs this the way you greet all Alphaâs?â His deep voice rumbles through the room, an edge of amusement to his tone. âIâm sorry.â I whisper, getting to my feet. âIâŚI thought I was alone.â I had no idea who he was but I could feel the power radiating off of him, even without my Wolf. âCome forward.â He orders and I already feel a lump forming in my throat. Alpha Trey was going to kill me. I do as Iâm told, allowing him to see me properly and I am met with narrowed crimson eyes. I close my eyes, expecting the worst. âYou smell funny. Yet you are a Wolf, correct?â I nod, though I couldnât tell how he was going to react. Most laughed when they found out about me. âI would prefer it if you spoke to me.â He growls, âIâm not in the mood to play games.â âYes.â I whisper. I couldnât help but think of all the punishments I was going to have to endure. A whipping maybe? Starvation for another week? I wasnât sure how much more my body could take. âHow is it possible for you to not know I was in the room? You should have scented me.â âIâŚ..â I hated the question. âSpit it out, I havenât got all day!â He takes a swig from his drink. I knew why I couldnât scent him. I knew why I hadnât been aware of his presence, but telling people why was not something I ever wanted or liked to do. They never let me tell my side of the story. All they do is accept Alpha Trey's word as the truth. âYou should open your eyes when you are talking to someone. Has your Alpha not taught you anything?â His deep voice sends a shiver through me. Slowly, I open my eyes and lower them, there was no way I was making eye contact. âMy Wolf abilities were bound,â I mutter. He leans forward, I could feel him staring at me, âWhy would someone do that?â If this is the Alpha that my brother is supposed to be meeting with, I knew I could screw everything up for him by saying too much. âIt was a punishment.â I whisper. It wasnât far from the entire truth but it was the simplest answer I could give. Thereâs a twitch in his cheek. Was he angry to hear of such a punishment? Or maybe, just like the others, he was amused by it. I couldnât tell. The door swings open and my brother screeches at me âNeah, what the heck are you doing in my office?â He turns to the crimson eyed man. âI am so sorry that my sister is bothering you, Alpha Dane.â Crap, it was him. My brother spins around, his hand stretching out to hit me. I close my eyes, bracing myself, ready to feel the burn. âI wouldnât do that if I were you.â Alpha Daneâs voice rumbles through the room. Peeking through slits, I see Alpha Dane has risen to his feet, his hand coiled around my brother's wrist. He was taller than my brother, more muscle too. âNeah,â My name rolls off of his tongue, âwas kindly showing me to your office, Alpha Trey, as you failed to meet me at the front of your house like I requested.â What? I had no idea what he was talking about. And he had no reason to lie for me. My brother glares at me, clenching his jaw tight. I was going to pay for this later. I would have to try and steal some food. âGo and get Beta Kyle.â Alpha Trey seethes. âTell him that our guest is here.â I nod my head and hurry from the room, the last thing I wanted was to be caught between bickering men. âBeta Kyle,â I whisper as I enter the dining hall. He instantly glares at me with his dark eyes. I had spoken without being spoken to. âAlpha Trey is in the office with Alpha Dane. I was sent to inform you.â He slams the newspaper down on the table and glares at me as he walks by. âYouâre lucky that the Alpha sent you to get me, otherwise you wouldn't be seeing sunlight for a few days.â Pausing behind me, he yanks my head back, locking his fingers in my hair, leaning in close to me, I feel his hot breath on my skin. He doesnât speak, it was just his way of proving that he could do what he wants when he wants. I try to keep myself busy so I can stay as far away from the office as possible. My peace doesnât last long when I hear my brother calling out to me. Quietly, I pad towards the office and plaster a smile on my face as I open the door. âNeah, go get the champagne and some glasses, we are celebrating.â I bow my head and hurry to the drinks cabinet. Quickly finding what my brother has asked for. As I re-enter the office, I can feel Alpha Dane watching my every move, even the hairs on the back of my neck stand up. No one ever watches me this closely. âNeah is your sister, correct?â Alpha Dane questions my brother. âShe is.â Alpha Trey mutters with disgust. He looks away from me to focus on the man asking questions. âWhy do you treat her like shit?â Straight to the point, my brother wouldnât like that. He only liked sharing information on his terms. No one had spoken to my brother about his treatment of me because everyone took great joy in beating me. I didnât know what to do. I couldnât move but I knew I had to get out of there. If this deal goes to pot because of me, then that would be my fault too. âNeah was responsible for our parents' death.â Alpha Trey spits. I closed my eyes, battling back the tears that were threatening to break free. âResponsible how?â Alpha Daneâs voice rumbles through me. He was definitely angry. âShe served them Wolfsbane.â Donât make a sound. Donât make a sound. I knew Alpha Dane was studying me. They all did, no one could ever quite believe how someone could do something so disgusting as poisoning their own parents. I stood there, with my head hanging low, wishing for the ground to open up and suck me in. There are movements around me. He was standing directly in front of me. With a rough finger he tilts my face up towards his, forcing me to look at him. Slowly, his hand latches onto my throat but he doesnât squeeze. âYou poisoned your parents?â âI was six.â I splutter. âI just made them lemonade.â My voice comes out all squeaky as I try to defend myself. I could barely remember my parents, but I could remember all the guilt I had been made to feel since that day. His crimson eyes flash to my brothers. âHardly seems fair to blame a six year old.â âA six year old should know the difference between plants.â Alpha Trey snaps âSounds to me like she was set up.â Alpha Dane shrugs his shoulders, letting go of my throat. âYou werenât there, Alpha Dane.â My brother muttered through gritted teeth as his eyes narrowed to slits. âI didnât ask you here to talk about my slave!â Alpha Dane grabs his leather jacket from the chair. Unlike other Alphaâs he seemed to dress more casually. A simple black tee and jeans covered his huge frame. And unlike other Alphaâs, his arms are bare of tattoos, not a single bit of ink poked out anywhere. âYouâre right and now I have a few things to mull over.â âI thought we agreed.â My brother exclaims. âNothing has been signed. Now I will show myself out.â The moment he is out of the office, both my brother and Beta Kyle round on me. âWhat the f-k did you say to him?â My brother demands, slamming a hand into my stomach. âN..nothing. Well, he just asked me why I smelled funny.â âDid you tell him?â Beta Kyle demands. He was practically spitting in my face. I hated him. I hated him so much that I had vowed to one day get my revenge and rip his stomach out through his mouth. âWELL?â My brother yells when I donât immediately respond and smacks me across the side of the head. My head involuntarily moves up and down. âBut I didnât say it was you.â I tried to sound strong and confident but it just comes out as a whisper. My brother's hand locks into my black hair as he yanks my head back, sending a shooting pain through my skull. âIf you have ruined this, you wonât see daylight again.â He drags me by my hair from the office and down the hallway towards the basement door. âPleaseâŚ.â I beg. âHe was an AlphaâŚI⌠I had to answer him.â My cheeks burn with my tears as he flings the door open. On the other side of the door is Alpha Dane. He is leaning against the wall with his arms folded, staring out at us. My brother's hand falls from my hair, relieving the pressure on the back of my skull. âAlpha Dane, I thought you had left.â Alpha Trey murmurs angrily. âI said I would show myself out. I thought I had found the door, but instead I find a basement, riddled in your sister's strange scent. Is this how you treat your family?â âAs I said,â my brother holds his ground, âShe is responsible for the death of my parents, so yes, this is what she deserves.â âYou should keep your nose out of other packs' business!â Beta Kyle adds. Alpha Dane laughs. âIf I agree to this deal, everything about your business becomes my business. So tell me, what would your punishment be for her? No food, locked away for a week, beatings?â âWe donâtâŚ.â âReally?â He cocks a brow, âYou really expect me to believe that you would have just let her sleep? I have already stopped you from hitting her once. " My brother and Beta Kyle fell silent. I peer through slits to see his crimson eyes on me. There was no reason for him to defend me and yet he was. I was a nobody, no one special. Just who everyone called a traitor. Only instead of being given a death sentence, my brother had decided to make me spend my life suffering. âI have a proposition for you, Alpha Trey.â Alpha Dane is smirking at my brother. âWe have already agreed on terms.â âWell, Iâm adding one. And if you donât agree, you will not get my help. Instead, you will become my enemy. And we both know, you donât want that.â âI take it that your new terms have something to do with her?â Alpha Trey mutters through clenched teeth. âYou would be correct. Let me take her away to my pack and then you, Trey will have a deal.â Me? Why would he want me? As my brother and his Beta discuss me, Alpha Dane is still studying me. His look made me nervous. What could someone like him possibly want with me? âDeal.â Alpha Trey sticks out his hand for Alpha Dane to shake. He doesnât take it, instead his crimson eyes shift from me to my brother. âI will have paperwork drawn up and will return tomorrow.â He reaches a hand out and cups my face, âEnsure you have everything packed.â He drags his thumb across my bottom lip and strides to the opposite end of the hallway and straight to the front door. He knew exactly where the front door was, so what was he up to? He pauses at the door. âIf I find out any one of you has laid a hand on her. The contract will be the last thing you need to worry about.â He struts out, slamming the door behind him. Seeing Alpha Dane walking out of the door, my brother immediately grabs me by the collar. "You think you're going to lead a good life if you follow Alpha Dane out of here? Don't be naive!" He continues in a vicious voice. "He's the cruellest man in the world, he has killed nine of his mates, I'm waiting to see what will happen to you!" | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,723 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458407409_1310287059954406_2545096154532741104_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=mwNZlaqtqqwQ7kNvgGbUoEB&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=Aa4FXanmh5xWNDFBTIZEpKc&oh=00_AYCVbtJ5skkMN-GNC3kN5nOqgI6SdOvULSRXzBK2ccRKbw&oe=671943AD | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,183 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222178}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đRead the next chaptersđ | This wasnât the first time I received photos of Owen cheating on me. The blonde hair and slender build of the woman kissing him reminded me of my best friend Josie. Could it beâŚ? No, she would never do that to me! With trembling fingers, I dropped my phone. How could my husband cheat on me?! I thought I was the most important person in his life. After 7 horrible years at the orphanage, I was adopted by Owenâs family. I saved Owen's life when we were young. His family was so grateful that they took me in. How could Owen betray me after everything we went through?! We grew up together and were always inseparable. We fell in love and got married when we were 22 years old. I canât believe that was almost 3 years ago now. But Owen had been acting very strange lately. These photos seemed to explain why⌠I had to confront him. âOwen?â I called out. âOwen, where are you?â He didn't answer. He must be upstairs. I walked up the stairs and heard him talking to his friend Simon on the phone. As I was about to knock on the door, I overheard: âNo, I donât think I love her anymore.â His words gave me icy chills. âYou should be happy, Simon. I know you like Noah. If we get a divorce, you can have her.â Owen continued. âHe said...what?â I couldnât believe my ears and cried in my heart, âHow dare he talk about me like that? I wasn't just some object he could give away! â Hearing Owenâs frivolous talk with his friend, I felt sick. I grew up with him and got married for so many years. But he recently acted like a stranger. Did he have a new love? Why did he treat me in such a cruel way?! I was almost to open the door to question him, but suddenly I hesitated, âQuestion him and then what? Do I want divorce? No, I donât think so. Anyway, I have to calm down. At least I need to have a talk with him first. I need to know what happened to our marriage.â So, I quietly made my way back downstairs. I tried to forget about what I heard by preparing dinner. As I was dishing up our pasta, the delightful scent of italian herbs drifted through the house. I heard Owen come downstairs. âJust in time for your dinner, hun!â I said, trying to sound normal. But he was wearing his coat and gelled hair. He looked handsome as ever and ready to leave. I could smell his aftershave - my favorite smell in the world. âWhere are you going? Itâs getting late and dinner is ready.â I said. âDinner with a client. Donât wait for me.â Owen replied and left without hesitation. I sat alone at the table, looking at the food Iâd carefully prepared for him. Tears were streaming down my cheeks. I listlessly turned the spaghetti round and round with my fork. I wasnât hungry. After storing away the leftovers, I stared at the TV for a while. Nothing could get my mind off of Owen and whoever that blonde tramp was. I made my way to the bathroom. I washed my mascara stained face and looked at myself in the mirror. Why did he stop loving me? Am I not beautiful enough? Did I not do enough to make him happy? I gave my body a scrutinizing glance, suddenly seeing all the parts of me that werenât perfect. My belly wasnât as flat as it used to be. Maybe I shouldâve had my lips done, like my friend Josie. Mine always used to be fuller than hers. But now she had the plump, luscious lips of a model. After washing up, I went to bed. Dropping my face into my pillow, I felt miserable. I tried to fall asleep, but my mind kept wandering. Where was Owen? And with who? Will he even come home tonight? At 1 am, I finally heard the key turn in the front door. From all the stumbling I could hear Owen was very drunk. I swiftly made my way downstairs to help him to the bedroom. He started kissing me and said a blurry name. I tried to identify what it was. After he repeated it many times, I was shocked. It sounded like... âJoiseâ! âJosieâŚ? Were you with Josie?â I asked with panic in my voice. I helped his heavy body into bed. He grunted some words I couldnât understand. I couldnât believe my husband cheated on me with my best friend. I cried and pleaded with him to see that it was me, not Josie. He pushed me away. As his head hit the pillow, he started snoring right away. Looking at my husband - completely drunk - I didnât recognize the man I knew and loved. I tried to sleep next to him. But it felt like I was lying next to a stranger. I went downstairs and sat on the sofa all night, wide eyed, thinking about what happened between us. The next morning, Owen came downstairs after a shower. I wanted to ask him how he was feeling. He must be hungover. When I got up from the couch, I felt very weak and feverish. The sleepless night must've made me sick. âOwen, are you OK?â I asked as I struggled to walk over to him. I really wanted to hug him. If only for a sense of comfort. He swept my arms away and told me to leave him alone. I was so weak and dizzy, his push made me fall. Owen was stunned for a moment. Then he said coldly, âIf youâre sick, go see a doctor.â I scrambled up to my feet, and looked at him with a shocked expression. Suddenly, his phone rang. As he lifted it to his ear, the screen lit up. I could clearly see who was calling: âJosieâ. Chapter 2 - Hope Noah My heart sank when Owen picked up the phone. The screen clearly said âJosieâ. He answered: âHello? Yes, of course, sir. I can take a look at those documents for you.â I couldn't believe Owen was lying to my face. He glanced at me, then quickly walked over to the kitchen. When he thought I couldn't hear him, his voice softened. He sounded so sweet. Although I couldnât hear his words, the way he spoke to Josie reminded me of the beginning of our romance. Owen was still trying to hide his betrayal from me. He must have forgotten that he gave away his secret last night, when he called me Josie. Those pictures on my phone left no doubt. He was cheating on me, with my best friend. I leaned up against the wall. I felt weakened by my fever and this emotional rollercoaster. I stared at my husband as he came back inside the living room. He avoided my eyes. It felt as if he had become a stranger. In the past, he wouldâve never let me suffer like this. âIâll pick you up later.â Owen said, ready to go. I grabbed his hand and begged him to stay with me. âPlease, donât leave. I'm sick, Owen. I need to see a doctor. Iâm too weak to be all by myself.â He was very impatient. He said he had some important business to deal with. I couldnât help crying as I watched him leave. My husband and my best friend were betraying me, behind my back. I walked up the stairs slowly, carefully holding on to the railing. I was so weak and fragile. Bed rest was my best option right now. I really needed my husband to take care of me. When we got married, he vowed to me: âIn sickness and in health, in good times and badâ. This was definitely a bad time, and he was nowhere to be seen. When I woke up from my nap, I felt even worse. In my feverish haze, I reached for my phone and tried to call Owen. I opened my recent contacts and found that Owen had not had any calls with me these days at all. I had to open the contact list to look for him, but a few minutes later I dialed out with a headache and dizziness. Almost immediately I heard: âHello, Noah?â The voice on the phone sounded very deep. I figured Owen got a cold after his late night out. âIâm so sick, Iâm so weak. I need to get to the hospital. Please, come back, pleaseâŚâ I pleaded, my voice weak and trembling. âIâll be right there.â Said the voice on the phone and hung up right away. His voice sounded different from before. And his tone was a little urgent. Whatâs wrong? I didnât have enough energy to think about it. At least he might still care about me. That comforted me a lot. Before long, there was a heavy knock on the door. Did Owen leave his key? I opened the door, expecting to look into Owen's gray eyes, but found Raymond's kind, hazel brown eyes instead. What was he doing here? Raymond was Owenâs uncle. He was only several years older, but very mature. He was tall, tanned and handsome. His chocolate brown hair matched his eyes. With his strong, square jaw and muscular body. I always thought Owen was one of the most attractive men I knew. It wasn't until Raymondâs appearance that I realized how dominant the handsome genes are in this family in terms of good looking. After living in Australia for most of his life, he had come back several years ago to take over his familyâs business. By now, he was the most successful CEO in the city. Although all women admired him, he remained single. âDoes Owen know youâre sick?â Raymond said, looking concerned. âHow did you know I'm sick? Do I look that terrible?â I asked, suddenly aware that I was only wearing my little nightgown, had no make-up on and had my hair up in a messy bun. Raymond smiled. âDon't worry, Noah. I got your call earlier.â Oops, I must have pressed the number of âOwenâs Bossâ instead of âOwenâ. I apologized for the inconvenience. âYou are a member of our family, Noah. Itâs my duty to take care of you. And you are never an inconvenience to me.â Raymond said as he took me by the arm to support me. He led me to his streamlined, dark gray Mercedes to drive me to the hospital. I sat down on the cream colored leather seat. His car smelled brand new. The seat was heated, which helped warm me up, but I was still shivering. Raymond took off his suede blazer and handed it to me. His simple act of kindness made me feel warm, inside and out. âThank you, Raymond. This means a lot to me.â I said with a relieved sigh. âOf course, Noah. Whenever you need me, Iâll be there.â He responded. He still had a slight Australian accent. He asked me what happened. I wouldnât have shared my familyâs private problems with another man who I didnât even know very well. But at that time, I was on the very edge of a breakdown. I really needed someone to talk to. Yet when I lost two of my closest persons on the same day, my husband and my best friend, who else could I talk to? âI donât think Owen loves me as much as before. It seems that he has some secrets with another woman, who used to be my best girlfriend. I couldn't sleep all night. I think that's what caused my fever.â I concluded. I was in tears again by the time I finished the story. âHow could they do this to you? You are the best thing that's ever happened to Owen. If he can't see that, he is an even bigger idiot than I thought!â Raymond shouted out. His shocked, angry expression showed me how much he cared. âPlease, don't say a word about this to Owen. I haven't confronted him yet. I need to do this myself.â I responded. We sat quietly for a while, his hand resting very close to my thigh. I felt so weak and miserable. But his presence helped. When seeing the private doctor, I tried to get out of the car but almost fell. Raymond flung an arm around me, just in time to catch me. I blushed as I looked up to him. My face was very close to his. His piercing eyes looked at me with an intensity I hadnât seen before. I smelled something fresh. It might be his aftershave. I remembered Owen also used it, and I always told he that I love what he smelled. But I found Raymondâs aftershave smelled a little special. âRaymond? Noah? What are you doing?!â I suddenly heard Owenâs angry voice. Chapter 3 - Truth Noah Raymond quickly let go of me as Owen approached us. Just before taking a step back. I stumbled over to my husband. I wanted to lean on him for support, but he didnât seem to care about me at all. All I could read on his face was anger. I tried to be strong and stand by myself, shivering with fever. âSo, youâve got a new love, huh? I saw you flirting with my uncle!â Owen spat his angry words at me. I turned pale. How could he say this to me? Especially after what he had done? I wasnât the one who couldnât be trusted! âOwen! How dare you talk to her like that! Itâs not our familyâs manner!â Raymond berated him. He was fuming with rage at the injustice. He also knew about Owen's betrayal. Owen was a little timid when Raymond got angry. Although Raymond was only 31 years old, he had become a successful CEO. He had idolized Raymond when he was a child. And now, Raymond was also his boss. Owen had recently started working at his company. Raymondâs fists were clenched and his tense muscles were visible through his buttoned up shirt. He looked like he was about to hit Owen. I didnât want them to fight over me, so I tried to calm them both down. âRaymond, itâs okay. Owen will take me in to see a doctor. Thank you for driving me here.â I said gratefully. âPlease, donât say anything about Josieâ, I tried to tell him mentally through the look in my eyes. He nodded slightly, as if he understood. He relaxed and his eyes softened when he looked at me. I turned back to my angry husband. I couldnât detect any sign of trust in his eyes. I supposed he should be concerned about my health rather than the relationship between me and Raymond. âOwen, I can explain. I tried to call you, but I was so sick I accidentally dialed Raymondâs number. He brought me to see the doctor. You should be grateful to him. Without him I would still be miserable in bed, all alone.â Owen grabbed me and said, âWell, I was just on my way to come and get you. Then I saw you get out of uncle Raymond's car and âfallâ right into his arms.â He looked at Raymond with an arrogant smirk. âYou can go back to your important job now, uncle. Iâll look after my wife.â Raymondâs eyes were cold, but he respected my wishes. He didn't object. After warning Owen that heâd better take good care of me, he got back in his car and drove off. Although I was glad I could lean on Owen, something didn't feel right. I realized I was still wearing his suede jacket. It was so soft and warm, protecting me from the cold autumn wind. When the doctor dealt with my fever, Owen didnât want to speak to me, let alone look at me. He was engaging himself in typing on his phone. The doctor told me I shouldn't have waited much longer. My fever was so high I could have fainted. After getting examined and taking medicine for my fever, Owen drove me home. We sat next to each other in our car that held many memories. All our road trips and getaways together. Those times were over now. After an uncomfortable silence, I decided to address the elephant in the room. âOwen⌠What is going on? Do you still love me? Do you still regard me as your wife?â I asked. âSo what? Whose wife do you want to be?â Owen hissed. I couldn't believe how horrible he was to me after what he had done. âI know you cheated on me, Owen.â I uttered with pain in my voice. âYouâve been seeing Josie, right?â Owen stopped the car with a jerk and pulled over. We sat in silence for a while as he processed my words. âWhat do you know, Noah?â he pressed, looking me in the eyes at last. I finally confronted him about all the things that had been weighing heavily on my heart. I explained: âSomeone sent me photos of the two of you together. The first time, they didn't show your face. So I didnât want to believe it. But in the ones I received yesterday, it was clearly you. All those nights, when you told me you had to leave town for business... You lied to me. You spent them at a hotel with another woman! Then, last night, you kissed me and called me Josie. And this morning, I saw it was her calling you. You pretended it was a client. âOwen, we have grown up together since we were kids. I always thought we knew each other the most and could trust each other. I canât believe you would cheat me like that!â I cried, âOwen, did you fall in love with another woman... Is she my best friend Josie?!â His eyes showed a moment of doubt. Then, resolution. His mouth tightened as he clenched his jaw. Just when I thought he wouldnât answer, Owen said: âItâs true. I love her. I love Josie.â Chapter 4 - Hurt Noah I just couldn't accept it. I loved him so much. How could he cheat on me? âWhy, Owen? I thought we loved each other. I thought we would be together forever. Did I do something wrong?â I cried. Owen didn't respond. He drove us home in silence. His cruelty was too much for me to bear. I stared at the raindrops on the window. I felt more depressed than ever. That afternoon, Owen left again. I tried having some food and a nap, hoping that would help me heal. But I just couldn't fall asleep until Owen came back home in the early evening. I had to talk to him. I got out of bed and met him at the top of the stairs. âOwen, we need to talk about what happened. You can't keep going out and avoiding me.â He was obviously drunk again. All he said was, âI donât have anything to say to you. I am moving out, Noah. I supposed our years of marriage is a mistake!â I took his hands in mine and begged him to stay and try to work it out. But he shook off my hands and pushed me away. I was standing right on the edge of the staircase. His push made me lose balance, and I tumbled down the stairs. I managed to grab onto the railing so I didnât fall all the way down. But my head hit the wall when I tried to break my fall. I felt my forehead was bleeding. It was so painful that I couldnât get up. I thought Owen would help me, but only heard: âYou lost your footing. Itâs not my fault.â There was a sudden knock on the door. Owen stumbled past me down the stairs. âRaymond? What are you doing here? Now is not a good time.â âI came to ask you what is going on. You need to give me an explanation. You havenât ⌠Noah?â Raymond suddenly saw me sitting on the stairs behind Owen. He pushed Owen aside and ran over to me in alarm. Seeing my messy hair and injured forehead, he instantly knew what happened between us. He punched Owen in the face. âThis is how you treat your wife?! I donât believe you. Donât you see Noah is bleeding? Did you hurt her? What a disgusting thing you smelled! You drunk idiot!â Raymond raged at his nephew. I didnât even have time to explain. Raymond immediately wrapped me up in his suit jacket and took me to see the doctor. âTwice in one day? That must be a record.â The doctor said wearily. I gave her a wry grin and answered, âNot by choiceâŚâ The doctor took care of my wounds. I needed a couple of stitches and had some pretty bad bruises, but I would be okay. Thankfully, I didn't break any bones. It was getting dark outside. The autumn breeze was busy blowing the leaves off the maple trees surrounding the hospital parking lot. Raymond and I made our way back to the car. Our feet rustled through the thick carpet of yellow, brown and scarlet red leaves. After my second - and hopefully last - doctor's visit of the day, we sat next to each other in silence. We were back in his beautiful Mercedes. I could get used to these comfortable, heated seats. I felt a bit embarrassed. Raymond kept on having to save me. At least this time, I was wearing clothes and make-up, and my brown hair was neatly tied in a long, wavy ponytail. âI donât normally need so much help, you know.â I broke the ice. âI happen to be a strong, independent woman most of the time.â Raymond laughed heartily. âJokes aside, I'm really grateful for everything you've done for me.â I continued. âWhy did you come over tonight, Raymond?â âOwen hadnât come to work at the company for days. And I wanted to speak to him about what happened this morning, with you. I tried to call him, but he never answered. I decided to come over. To see for myself what was wrong with him.â Raymond explained. âI just canât believe what he did to you!â He continued. âIf he ever does anything like that again, please tell me. Iâll teach him a lesson.â His stern face showed how much he meant it. I took a deep breath. He had a way of making me feel safe and secure. âThank you, Raymond. Iâm okay now. It was an accident. Owen didnât push me off the stairs on purpose. He didnât mean to hurt me.â I explained. Raymond looked a little angry, but he still carefully drove me home. âGoodbye, Raymond. Thank you again, for everything.â I said with feeling as he hugged me. âBye, Noah. Itâs been my pleasure. Please be safe. Call me if you need anything.â He said. He gently patted me on my head as comfort as if I was a little girl and got back in his car. His simple actions made me feel warm. I thanked him and walked home. I entered the house. It was quiet and dark downstairs. I walked up to our room. When I opened our bedroom door, all I could see was Owen and Josie kissing on the bed. Chapter 5 - The Necklace Noah I couldnât believe my eyes! While the hours I was leaving, my husband was screwing with my best friend in my room! Didnât he remember I got hurt because of him?! How ridiculous! Even though I had seen Owen and Josieâs betrayal before in photos, witnessing it in real life was way worse. It felt like a million knives stabbed me in the chest. My heart shattered. âHow dare you cheat on me in our home! In our own bed, for Godâs sake!â I cried out. They hadnât heard me open the bedroom door over the romantic music that was playing. They turned around with shocked looks on their faces. If I wasnât so devastated, it mightâve been funny. Owen's mouth had lipstick smears all over it, and Josieâs blonde hair was disheveled. They were both in their underwear. Clothes were spread out all over our bedroom floor. I tried to hold back my tears. I didn't want to show them my pain. My crying might come across as weakness. I demanded an explanation. âI donât believe this. Owen! Did you forget I am your wife?! Josie, why did you betray me too?! I treat you as my best friend. How dare you take my husband away from me!â I insisted. Josie hid away in Owenâs arms. Owen comforted her gently, then snapped at me: âYouâve already seen us together anyway, haven't you, Noah?â âI am done with you.â He continued. âOur whole relationship was based on a lie. Josie shouldâve been with me all along!â I didnât understand. âWhat are you talking about, Owen?â He held up a delicate golden necklace with a tear shaped ruby that had been resting on Josieâs collarbone. âRemember this, Noah? The truth has finally come out. It was Josie who saved my life all those years ago, not you. You pretended that it was you in front of my parents. Youâve made her suffer long enough!â I was shocked. Why did Josie have my necklace? I couldn't believe her betrayal. I tried to explain to Owen that I lost that necklace before I was adopted by his family. I told him I would never lie to him. Especially about something so important. But Owen didnât believe me. âJosie,â I cried. âHow could you do this to me? Why would you steal my necklace? You know how much it means to me! Weâve been best friends since the orphanage, havenât we? Does that mean nothing to you?â âNoah, you know this necklace has always belonged to me. I was the one who saved Owen. But you stole my life to be adopted,âJosie played innocent with me, âI should have been the one who grew up with Owen! I see you as my sister, so I never attempted to reveal your lie until Owen found this necklace in my old jewelry box several months ago.â This convinced Owen even more that I had been bullying her. He wrapped his arms around her. Over his shoulder, when he couldnât see, Josie gave me a quick, mean smirk. I knew Josie had a mean side. She always had, even when we were kids. But so far, she had only taken it out on her boyfriends and whoever got on her bad side, not on me. I never thought she might treat me in such a mean way! I had searched everywhere but couldn't find my necklace. It turned out that she was the thief who was always around me. How could she tell such outrageous lies as if it were naturalďź I left the bedroom, rushed downstairs and broke down on the couch. Oh, what a nightmare! How could I make Owen see the truth? A little later, Owen and Josie came downstairs, all dressed up again. Josie was wearing her Prada pumps and the sleek, mint green dress I gifted her for her birthday. It accentuated her long legs and slender silhouette. I had to admit, she looked beautiful. I used to dress in a simple way such as simple jeans, white blouse and sneakers. Maybe I looked less attractive compared to Josie. Owen had an arm around Josieâs waist and warned me, âYouâd better stay out of our life from now on. Iâll move to another villa with Josie.â I couldn't believe it. After 3 years of marriage, he trusted her story over mine. And now he wanted nothing to do with me. We used to be happily married. Our whole lives, ever since I saved him, we had been so close. We used to laugh together, cry together, play pranks on each other⌠But now, everything changed, simply because of a necklace. In fact, ânecklaceâ is just an excuse for his betrayal. I didnât believe our years of affection couldnât prove my heart. âNoah, my life was ruined by you. You owe me that.â Josie said. âOne day youâll both regret this. I didnât do anything wrong.â I sobbed. As they walked out, I faintly heard Owen reply: âItâs my fault. I should have found you earlier, or you wouldnât have suffered so much.â I could only guess at his last insult as the door closed behind them. I zoned out in front of the TV and poured myself some of Owenâs whisky. The past couple of days had been the worst of my life ever since I lost my parents. My body and mind had been through so much. I felt numb. I must have fallen asleep on the couch. The sudden loud jingle of my phone ringing woke me up. The bright midmorning sun was shining in through the large windows. Looks like I slept in late. Disoriented, I picked up my phone and saw it was Owen calling. I accepted the call and brought the phone to my ear. Before I could say a word, I heard Owenâs angry shouting: âHow dare you do this to Josie! Those guys you hired? You must pay for what you have done!â Chapter 6 - Choice Noah âWhat?! What guys? I just woke up, Owen. I have no idea what youâre talking about.â I replied to the angry voice on the phone. âMore lies! I canât believe you, Noah. You're despicable!â Owen shouted. He was so loud, I had to move the phone away from my ear. âOwen, please calm down. All I remember is you leaving with Josie last night. I fell asleep on the couch. What happened?â âJosie is in the hospital because of you. I demand that you come here right now and apologize to her!â He ended the call before I could reply. What was this about? Would my life ever go back to normal? I decided to find out what was going on. My fever was over. Although my head still hurt, the wound was healing rapidly. I took a refreshing shower and got into a pencil skirt and light blue blouse. I combed my hair and decided to wear it in natural loose waves today. After a quick breakfast, I slipped into my high heels and coat, and made my way to my car. It was a crisp sunny day. I arrived at the hospital. At least it wasn't me who needed to see the doctor this time. âOh, itâs our âold friendâ.â The nurse said jokingly. I smiled as she directed me to Josieâs room. As soon as I knocked on the door, Owen opened it with an enraged look on his face. âFinally! That took you long enough.â He whispered angrily. âJosie is sleeping.â He came out and gently closed the door behind him. We walked towards the chairs in the hallway. âI have no idea what happened, Owen.â I said honestly. âCan you please tell me what is going on? Some guys attacked her?â âAre you still pretending you weren't behind this? You are unbelievable.â He shook his head, then continued. âJosie was attacked by some hooligans this morning, on her way to work. She shouted out and fainted from fear. Thankfully, a police officer was nearby. He heard her scream. She has a heavy concussion from the fall. She'll have to stay here a few days to recover.â âWhat? That's horrible!â I replied in shock. Although I was angry with Josie, I wouldn't wish this on anyone. âStop your act now, Noah. Those guys were arrested. They told the police someone paid them to kidnap Josie, because she broke up a marriage.â No wonder he doubted me. But I couldnât believe the trust between us was so fragile. âWould you believe me if I swore to you it wasn't me?â I asked with a last glimmer of hope. His reply made it clear to me that there was no hope left for us: âNever again will I believe a single word you say, Noah.â I refused to apologize. I didn't have anything to do with this. If anyone needed to stand out and make an apology, it was them for what they had done to meďź On my way out, I contacted a friend who had lots of connections all over the city. I asked her to investigate the situation. I also called the office on my way home, to let them know I was still recovering from my fever and head wound. My boss was understanding. She told me to take as long as I needed. In the evening, Owen came home just as I was about to have dinner. âI didnât prepare your dinner. I guess you would have dinner with Josie?â I said plainly. I didnât know why he came back at this time, but I didnât care about it anymore. He ignored my words and said, âYou still donât want to apologize, right? You have two choices, Noah. Apologize and make amends with Josie, or divorce me and get out of this house!â âJosie is the one who betrayed us both. She lied to you, Owen. She stole my necklace. She is the one who should apologize!â I argued. Owen burst out in rage and slapped me in the face. I stared at him in disbelief. I was totally disappointed. Over the past few days he had hit me, pushed me, cheated on me. He had hurt me in every way. I made up my mind. âI choose divorce.â I said coldly. âGood. My lawyer will contact you in the next morning,âOwen said ruthlessly with a wicked smile, âOh, Iâve prepared another âsurpriseâ for you. Hope you will enjoy it!â | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12690&u | Random Reading | https://www.facebook.com/61560831098071/ | 20 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | redtgb.com | DCO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12690&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/455865391_898185752348242_4786861724337625454_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=jaAalbhValsQ7kNvgG7mhhB&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=Aa4FXanmh5xWNDFBTIZEpKc&oh=00_AYBOGRu6ofb1-m-a0PB9lF2X_Wv0LUPumDkLzVcWwxazuw&oe=671915F8 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Random Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,473 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"is_bh_simple_request":false,"simple_request_ratio":0.9991783073130649,"is_bh_selenium":false,"selenium_ratio":1,"ratio_threshold":0.8}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đżâ¨ Escape to tranquility with our donation-based Mini Retreat on November 2nd & 9th, from 11:00 AM to 12:30 PM PST at Fortcross Family Farm in Julian! đź Join us for a rejuvenating experience that includes light yoga, sound bath healing, guided somatic experiencing, and journaling reflection. This retreat is designed to nurture your mind, body, and spirit in the serene surroundings of nature. đśđ§ââď¸ Additionally, a Farm Tour Adventure is available for separate purchase through the farmâs website: [Fortcross Farm Tour Adventure](https://www.fortcross.com/farmtouradventure). đď¸đ˛Spaces are limited, so reserve your spot today by clicking the Eventbrite link in my bio! Tickets must be reserved online in advance, no walk ins please. We canât wait to see you there! đ⨠This event is donation based, any amount is appreciated. Your donation makes it possible for us to continue providing these healing opportunities for the community. A percentage of proceeds will be donated to Fortcross Family Farm. ⢠⢠⢠#sandiegoretreat #californiaretreat #wellnessretreat #holisticretreat #meditationretreat #yogaretreat #spiritualretreat #selfcareretreat #sandiegoadventures #sandiegowellness #sandiegohealth #sandiegospirituality #sandiegoevents #sandiego #sandiegoselfcare #sandiegomentalhealth #sandiegoyoga #sandiegostaycation | LEARN_MORE | https://www.eventbrite.com/e/mini-retreat-donation | findyourpowerwellness | https://www.instagram.com/_u/findyourpowerwellness | 0 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | eventbrite.com | IMAGE | https://www.eventbrite.com/e/mini-retreat-donation-based-tickets-1046876885947?aff=ebdsoporgprofile | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.cdninstagram.com/v/t51.2885-19/454813043_701729632113046_6426868247792779149_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s206x206&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=7fff4e&_nc_ohc=pXt3bZK4wPUQ7kNvgHd5qUI&_nc_ht=scontent.cdninstagram.com&oh=00_AYAvD6iwOZk4kBZkIvQRc6mmhkS8UXy1RO80vTdRNp5V4Q&oe=671924AE | IG_ADS_IDENTITY | 1 | 0 | 0 | findyourpowerwellness | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,042 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222020}' |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đRead the next chaptersđ | Chapter 1 Everyone called her a party girl. This time, however, Mia Shaw finally met her match. The whole city was waiting to see her make a fool of herself. There was a dinner party following her breakup with her ex. Unexpectedly, she hooked up with the most esteemed man in Hampshire City at this party. He was the perfect husband, but he had one fatal flaw. ⌠The ballroom was dazzling with lights and elegantly dressed guests. In the southeastern corner, Victor Gray was chatting up a beautiful woman. He had his arms wrapped around her, and he was completely unaware of Mia approaching. âVictor, I heard you and Mia have set a date for your marriage. Congratulations!â âI never said Iâd marry her. Now that sheâs done fooling around, she wants a decent man to settle down with? Itâs wishful thinking on her part.â His friend was surprised. âHavenât you been pursuing her for years?â âI was only pretending to be in love with her.â Victor caressed the womanâs waist and replied indifferently. âEveryone else has had their fun with her. Iâm not about to marry someone like that.â Mia was shocked. Victor had always appeared devoted to her. Although she was not particularly fond of him, she had taken their engagement seriously and even announced it herself. She usually rejected others, but it turned out that she could be rejected too. Right then, someone noticed her and started signaling to Victor. Victor received the cue and turned around. He panicked for a moment when he saw Mia. But he quickly hid it and pretended to be unbothered. âSince youâve heard everything, letâs clear things up. I invited you here to break up with you, not announce our wedding. Ivyâs conceived, and I need to accept responsibility.â The crowd turned their eyes toward them. There was surprise, but mostly jeers. After all, Mia getting dumped was quite the show. Despite her tarnished reputation, she had been lucky enough that the Gray family was willing to accept her. Without Victor, who else would want her? No matter how enchanting she was, everyone still treated her like dirt. Mia remained composed and showed no reaction. She then scanned the room until her gaze landed on a handsome man in the corner. She was looking at Nolan Locke, the Locke familyâs wealthy and aloof heir. This family had a century-old empire and held a near-royal status in Hampshire City. Even the Gray family had to respect them. She gracefully walked up to Nolan in her champagne-colored gown. Mia had such refined beauty that it was as if she had been sculpted by a master. Nolan assessed her with calm eyes as she wrapped her fingers around his tie and gave it a few twists. He narrowed his eyes but did not stop her. She leaned in and whispered, âActually, I had my eye on you first, but I couldnât resist Victorâs relentless pursuit. Now that weâve broken up, Iâd like to pursue you. Is that okay?â Victor was the first to react. He nearly jumped up and scoffed loudly. âMia, are you crazy? Trying to salvage your dignity by going after Nolan? Heâs a good friend of mine. What makes you think heâd give you any attention?â Mia ignored him as if his words were just white noise. Her shimmering eyes stayed fixed on Nolan as she waited quietly for his response. There was a hint of interest in his dark eyes, and he smirked. âSure. You can pursue me. Donât mind him.â As soon as he spoke, the room erupted into murmurs. Even the boastful Victor was taken aback. Mia was not confident that Nolan would entertain her advances. The Gray and Locke families were family friends, so Nolan would likely reject her. If he did that, she would also be humiliated. However, she did not care. Dignity was something she had lost long ago. She suddenly expressed interest in Nolan just to spite Victor. She released Nolanâs tie and prepared to leave. However, he grabbed her waist and pulled her close with his hand firmly on her back. His deep voice was full of allure. âDidnât you say you wanted to pursue me? Leaving already?â Mia frowned slightly. Nolan was not playing by the rules and being even more proactive than she had expected. She only mentioned that she would pursue him, not that she would start immediately. But since they were still in public, she had to keep up the act. Her fingers crawled up his neck as she murmured shyly, âThere are too many people here.â âAlright. Letâs go somewhere less crowded,â Nolan easily agreed and surprised Mia with his compliance. He wrapped his arm around her as everyone watched. Victorâs shouting followed them while they exited the ballroom, but Nolan ignored him. Eventually, Victor caught up to them. âNolan, youâre taking this joke too far.â Nolan turned back calmly. âWerenât you just playing with her? You wronged her first, so donât put the blame on others. Iâm taking her away.â With that, he led Mia downstairs. Mia felt a bit awkward. âMr. Locke, thank you for helping me out.â Nolan had always been Miaâs type, both in terms of appearance and personal qualities. When she first met the men, she was indeed more interested in Nolan. But Victor announced that he wanted to woo her, so all his friends avoided her to prevent any misunderstandings. Otherwise, she might have actually pursued Nolan herself. Nolan looked at her. His affectionate and inviting eyes seemed to whisper sweet nothings. âDo you really want to pursue me?â âMaybe Iâll give it a shot. Thereâs no one I canât win over,â Mia replied. Nolan smiled faintly. Perhaps he was amused, or he found her amusing. âPursuing me wonât be easy.â âIâm not afraid of a challenge.â âThen, show me your sincerity.â Mia looked at him in confusion. Forty minutes later, she understood what he meant by âsincerity.â He had taken her to a hotel. As they fell onto the large bed, Mia felt a little disoriented. What was this? She had never heard of showing sincerity by starting in bed. This sequence seemed illogical. By the time she realized what was happening, there was no turning back. The soft and clean sheets beneath them creased and ruffled. Nolan had a reputation for being chaste and unmotivated by lust. Meanwhile, Mia was a reputed vixen of the city. But at that moment, she felt that Nolan played the game far better than she did. In reality, Mia was still innocent, and Nolan was her first. Midway through, he seemed to realize this as well, and surprise flashed in his eyes. âYouâre...â Feeling embarrassed, Mia pretended to be impatient. âAre we doing this or not? If we are, hurry up. I donât like men who talk too much in bed.â Nolan raised an eyebrow in amusement, and an unreadable smile crossed his face. After a heated night, Mia woke up late the next morning. But Nolan was nowhere to be seen in the room. Her clothes were hanging neatly on the couch beside the bed and within easy reach. Last night, they had been scattered all over the floor. So, Nolan probably tidied the place when he got up. Chapter 2 After Mia changed her clothes, Nolan returned to the room. Mia was slightly startled. âI thought you had already left.â Nolan remained silent, and his gaze fell on the spot where she had slept. The white sheets bore a red stain. Nolanâs expression was complex. Rumors had painted Mia as a woman who had been with countless men, and everyone thought that her dignity had been tarnished long ago. He never expected her to be the first time. Mia thought he might be worried that she would use this to cling to him. So, she spoke first, âDonât worry. I have no hang-ups, and I wonât expect you to take responsibility. This was my choice.â Sleeping with a handsome man like Nolan did not feel like a loss to her. His skills had matched his looks, and she had enjoyed it. It seemed fair. Nolan was about to say something but paused. He chose his words carefully before he finally said, âA single night doesnât really mean anything.â Mia nodded in understanding, as this was within her expectations. Nolan called for room service, and soon, they delivered a lavish breakfast spread. Both of them sat at the table and ate in an oddly silent atmosphere. Mia accidentally smeared some of the sandwich she was eating on her lips. She was about to wipe it off with a napkin when Nolan reached across and steadied her chin with one hand. Then, he wiped the smudge off with the thumb of his other hand. It was a moment of closeness in their sober state. Unexpectedly, Mia felt her face warm up. âMia, once you start pursuing me, you canât pursue anyone else,â Nolan said as he looked intently at her. Mia was taken aback. âWhy not?â Nolan frowned, and he was puzzled by her question. Mia explained, âIf Iâm the one pursuing, the initiative is mine. If I canât win you over, arenât I allowed to give up and pursue someone else?â Her logic stumped Nolan for a moment. Mia added, âBesides, Iâve decided not to pursue you anymore.â Nolan furrowed his brows even further, and his demeanor became cold. âWhat did you say?â âWeâve already slept together before Iâve had the chance to pursue you properly. Do I really need to continue?â Mia spread her hands. Nolan could not help but laugh, albeit bitterly. He remembered the rumors painting Mia as a party girl. She truly lived up to her reputation. âSo, you pursue someone just to sleep with them?â The usually aloof Nolan Locke was almost driven to say something as undignified as âEven if you have my body, you wonât have my heart.â âNot really,â Mia admitted and felt a bit guilty. âBut itâs not like youâd actually marry me.â âWho says itâs impossible?â Nolan replied slowly. Mia was stunned. Although the Shaw family was part of the elite, it did not compare to the century-old, prestigious families like the Gray and Locke families. The Locke family was influential in real estate, tourism, energy, finance, and more. Mentioning the Locke family in Hampshire City alone could shake the ground. Families clamored to align themselves with the Locke family through marriage. The Shaw family did not come close. Would the Locke family really consider her? Was Nolan just playing with her? Mia put down her cutlery. âIâm full. Could you please take me home, Mr. Locke?â Nolan was frustrated, and he felt that she was not taking him seriously. After a drag, he nonchalantly said, âAnd here I thought I had met someone interesting. Miss Shaw, you might as well go back on your own. Iâm not headed that way.â Mia picked up her bag and stood up gracefully. âMr. Locke, donât bother trying to provoke me. I may not have the best reputation, but I have my principles. I wonât be anyoneâs mistress.â Miaâs aunt, Ellen Shaw, had pressured her to marry a man over seventy to escape her circumstances, but she was not about to jump from one cage into another. She sought an equal relationship. Only then would she have the freedom to pursue what she wanted. Mia turned to leave, but as she opened the door, Nolanâs voice rang out. âI canât promise Iâll marry you, but becoming an official couple isnât out of the question.â Mia stopped in her tracks. She really needed to improve her status, especially if she wanted to be with someone as influential as Nolan. Only then would she not be treated like a commodity or be handed out to anyone who showed interest. Ellen had tolerated her past relationship with Victor because of the Gray familyâs status. Since Victor had broken off their engagement, Mia was worried about facing Ellen at home. Her suggestion for Nolan to drive her home had also been strategic. If Ellen saw that Mia had gotten with Nolan, she would likely be less critical. âReally? Iâll hold you to it, then.â Mia turned around with gleaming eyes. âI donât have many virtues, but the one I do have is loyalty!â Mia knew that it would be tough. However, with Nolanâs heart softening, she was no longer afraid about not winning him over. She may not have much experience in pursuing others, but she was well-versed in being pursued. With sincere intentions, she was sure that she could turn this small opening into a real opportunity. Nolan began to walk away. After a few steps, he noticed that Mia had not followed, so he turned back with a frown. âArenât you coming?â Mia feigned ignorance. âSo, weâre headed the same way now?â Nolan did not reply this time and just continued walking. Bouncing after him, she caught up and entered the elevator with him. Her exquisite face carried a hint of playfulness. Nolanâs expression remained impassive, and his tall figure exuded a silent coldness. However, he seemed less unapproachable next to the woman with a bright, blooming smile. Eventually, Nolan dropped Mia off at her home. The car glided smoothly up to the front of the villa without any attempt to hide. âThank you for the ride, Mr. Locke,â Mia said as she got out of the car before bowing slightly in gratitude. âIt was on my way,â Nolan replied. The car window rolled up and obscured his face behind the privacy glass. Then, the car pulled away. Mia stood there and remained polite as she watched him drive off. She took her time to enter the house. While she bent down to change her shoes, a fierce female voice bombarded her with questions, âWhere were you last night? You didnât come home! And who dropped you off?!â Ellen was standing at the center of the living room, and her stern gaze was fixed on Mia. Miaâs mother had passed away early on, while her father never provided for her. He was mostly reliant on his brother and sister-in-lawâs charity throughout his life. As they did not have children of their own, Miaâs father had shamelessly exchanged her for a substantial sum of money. Ellen had been meticulous in Miaâs upbringing by making her attend classes for piano, cello, dance, horse riding, and golf. Everything a lady of a wealthy household should know, Mia had to learn. Everyone praised Ellen for her generosity toward a child who was not her own. But only Mia knew that Ellen saw her as a valuable asset. She was to be groomed for an advantageous marriage. As such, Ellen was particularly strict with Mia; she allowed her almost no personal freedom. âIt was Nolan Locke, the Locke familyâs eldest son.â At the mention of Nolanâs name, Ellenâs face immediately lit up. âThe heir to the Locke Group, Nolan Locke?â Mia nodded quietly. Ellen quickly dropped the subject. Mia scoffed inwardly. Ellen did not truly care whether she was fooling around with men. All that mattered to Ellen was the status of the man involved and whether he could be of benefit to her career. Chapter 3 âTell me. Whatâs going on with you and Victor?â âWe broke up. He initiated it.â âThe engagement announcement was already made public. Do you think this is some childâs play?â âHe cheated, and that woman is carrying his child. Itâs better this way. I donât want to have anything to do with him anymore.â âUseless!â Ellen cursed. However, it was unclear if she was scolding Victor for his lack of morals or Mia for failing to secure her man. Ellen grew increasingly angry. She strode over to Mia and poked her temple. âDo you really think you can level up to the Locke family? What makes you think someone like Nolan Locke would care for your background? Iâll lay it out for you now. Either you make up with Victor and continue with the wedding or start accompanying me to social events again and prepare for an arranged marriage.â The mention of an arranged marriage made Mia shiver. Previously, Ellen had mentioned a property tycoon in his seventies. The man had outlived two wives and had numerous children, some old enough to be Miaâs parents. The first thing he did was demand that Mia devote herself to serving his entire family after marriage. This was not a marriage proposal; it was a job offer for a maid. Mia had also heard that despite his age, the tycoon was notoriously promiscuous. He had ruined many of his young lovers, which included celebrities. Ellen only stopped pushing her for more matchmaking after she started dating Victor. The reason was his family background was comparable to the tycoonâs. ⌠Ellen sent Mia back to her room. Shutting the door, Mia threw herself onto the bed and rolled into the covers. Tears silently streamed down her face. She just needed to hold on a little longer. Once she received her appointment notice from the Hampshire City Art School, she could move out and escape Ellenâs control. Mia then took out her phone. Victor had been bombarding her with calls and messages. He was questioning why she was hooking up with his friend. Annoyed, Mia immediately blocked him. Nolanâs number, which she had recently added, lay quietly in her address book. It seemed like they had reached some kind of agreement, but she still felt that he might have been impulsive. He could very well forget about their arrangement. So, in the following days, Mia did not reach out to him or see him. She was busy with her new job. Ellen did not allow Mia to rest for long. She was eager to bring her along to high-society parties and business gatherings. At the events, Ellen and Mia moved through the crowds as they exchanged toasts and pleasantries. Mia was a stunning beauty, and naturally, she became the center of attention. Many wealthy businessmen and political figures gave her favorable attention. So, who said beauty was not valuable? In such environments, beauty could indeed translate into a certain amount of worth. In one evening, Ellen had secured several significant business deals. Meanwhile, Mia had exchanged contact information with many influential people. At the end of the party, Ellen suddenly pushed Mia toward a construction magnate. âMr. Tate, Iâm entrusting Mia in your care tonight. If she does anything unsatisfactory, please be patient.â âMrs. Shaw, please donât mind us. Donât worry. Once Mia has had her fun, Iâll escort her back.â Even Mia, who often played the fool, understood the implication. Despite her notorious reputation, some people were still eager to court her. However, Mia would turn many down and offend them by using her relationship with Victor as an excuse. Unfortunately, Victor had just dumped her before their engagement. She had lost any bargaining power in marriage negotiations. Rather than waste her youth and beauty, Ellen decided it would be more profitable to send her to interested executives as a form of benefit exchange. The realization sent a chill through Miaâs body. She also felt heartbroken because she could not believe that Ellen could be so cruel. âAre you tired, Mia? Why donât you sit down over there?â George Tate came closer with a smile that revealed his ulterior motives. He did not give Mia a chance to reject. Instead, he put his arm around her shoulder and guided her toward a secluded corner. His motives were glaringly obvious. His urgency had been apparent even during the party. Mia endured his advances with disgust while she quickly thought of ways to get rid of the old lecher. Once seated, George did not hesitate to place his rough hand on her behinds. Mia stood up abruptly. Her face was pale, but she held back her anger for the Shaw familyâs sake. âI need to use the restroom. I drank too much.â âAlright, go ahead. But come back quickly.â Georgeâs smile lingered as he watched her. To him, she looked like a lamb that could not escape his grasp. Mia quickly walked in the opposite direction. She did not really know where the restroom was; she just wanted to get away. However, George followed her. Alarm bells rang in Miaâs head. She started to run even though her mermaid-style evening gown made it difficult. Worried about being caught by George, Mia pushed a random door open and found herself face to face with Victor. Victor was sitting right in front of the door on a couch. He was playing cards with a few acquaintances whom Mia recognized. What made the situation more awkward was that Victorâs new girlfriend, Ivy Brent, was also present. His body tensed when he saw Mia. Sensing Victorâs discomfort, Chris Hughes followed his gaze and spotted Mia too. He was seated next to Sam Andrews, so he gave him a nudge with his elbow. âWhatâs the matter? Is it too cramped, or are you trying to flirt with me?â As Sam looked up, his words got caught in his throat as if heâd seen a ghost. âYou guys were right. She really couldnât stand being away from Victor. Look, sheâs already back,â he said. âVictor, she must be here to confront you!â Seeing Mia, Ivyâs innocent face instantly turned pale. She clung tightly to Victorâs arm, and her look of distress made it seem as if Mia was the aggressor. Victor glanced back at Mia but ignored her presence. âAre we playing or not? Letâs continue.â âVictor, Iâm not feeling well... I think I want to go home...â Ivy whispered. âWhatâs wrong? Do you need to go to the hospital?â Victor asked gently. His concern was evident. Sam could not bear to watch Ivyâs act and directly addressed Mia, âMia, Victor and Ivy are happy together. What are you doing here? Ask yourself. Werenât you also at fault for what happened between you two? Ivyâs a thousand times better for him than you ever were. Be sensible and stop bothering him.â Mia had no intention of entering upon seeing them. âYouâre all mistaken, I was just looking for someone and walked into the wrong place,â she replied coolly and stepped out without missing a beat. Right then, her primary concern was George. Distracted, she turned and bumped into someoneâs arms. Chapter 4 Miaâs reaction was almost reflexive as she pushed the person away in a panic and nearly stumbled from retreating. Nolanâs expression darkened slightly as he steadied her. âWhat happened?â He had been with the group in the private room too. Initially, he and Victor had a falling out, but it did not take long for Victor to seek him out. Victor felt that a woman like Mia was not worth losing years of brotherhood over. So when Victor came out for fun, he called Nolan to join him. To Nolanâs surprise, he ran into Mia. His gaze drifted downward, and he noted the curve of her waist. There was no question that she had an appealing figure. Her waist was slender enough for him to hold with one hand, and her skin looked like porcelain under the warm light. Her entire being seemed soft and delicate. Anyone who saw her would yearn to get a closer look. However, the fear in her eyes was evident; she was clearly scared of something. When Mia realized that it was Nolan, she stopped, and a sigh of relief escaped her lips. Just then, Victorâs voice echoed from the room. âNolan, whatâs taking you so long? Weâre all waiting!â Nolan hummed in response and released Mia before he entered the room. Mia stood frozen for a second. Nolan and Victor had been at each otherâs throats not long ago, but it seemed that all animosity had disappeared. That figured. Why would she be worth sacrificing their brotherhood, which began in their cribs? She did not deserve it. Although she had not actively pursued Nolan or tried to contact him recently, his detached demeanor suggested that he did not care. His pcraziness in bed that night contrasted sharply with his current indifference. Men like Nolan were at the pinnacle of the social pyramid. To them, brief flings were nothing more than trivial distractions and not worth any emotional investment. He had likely forgotten the promises he had made that night. Mia smiled bitterly to herself and headed toward the outdoor area of the lounge. Many guests were getting some air there. All of a sudden, someone with a strong hand pulled her into a security passageway. A man pinned her against the door while he restrained her hands. His manly, overpowering scent flooded her senses, and she was terrified. Mia tried to kick the figure before her, but he stopped her with his leg. âSo rough,â the man teased. The motion sensor light came on, and Mia saw Nolanâs face. âWhy are you here? What are you doing...?â âI stepped out for fresh air. What are you sneaking around for?â Nolan asked without changing their compromising position in the secluded space. His tone was devoid of emotion yet somehow laced with underlying desire. Mia was contemplating asking him for help when Georgeâs voice echoed down the corridor. It struck her like thunder. âMia, stop hiding. The restroom is in the other direction. Come out. Let me take you there.â Georgeâs tone made her stomach turn. She stopped pushing Nolan away and gave him a pleading look instead. She was hoping that he would not hand her over. Initially resisting physical contact, she suddenly seemed to find solace in Nolanâs arms. Seeing Mia cling to him like a frightened kitten, Nolan raised his brows in curiosity and watched the unfolding drama. He was familiar with George Tate, a material supplier who had risen to wealth in recent years. George was known for his predatory behavior toward female college students. Considering Miaâs situation at the Shaw residence, it was not hard to guess what was happening. However, unless Mia spoke up, Nolan was not inclined to intervene on his own. âSo, arenât you going out? Heâs looking for you,â he whispered close to her forehead, and his breath tickled her. Mia clenched her fists and found the humiliation unbearable. âCan you help me?â Her voice was low and desperate. Nolan replied, âYou only seek me out when you need something. Iâm not some saint or one of your on-call lackeys.â Mia took in his words for a moment. Was he calling her out for not keeping in touch? She glanced at his face with bright eyes and playfully scratched his waist with her slender hand. As Nolan looked down, his gaze intensified. His lean muscles tensed under her gentle touch as well. She then stood on tiptoes and kissed him on the lips. His lips were dry and cool. They also had a lingering scent of tobacco and mint. Mia had no plans to deceive Nolan. She knew too well that tricking him would be like walking into a trap. So, she gave him what he wanted instead. She could tell by his gaze that his intentions were not pure. With that, she kissed him carefully and grazed the surface of his lips without much skill. She sensed that Nolan was not particularly impressed as he looked at her indifferently and observed her attempt to please him. Feeling challenged, Mia wondered if she was not attractive enough for him. She intentionally leaned closer, and their lips met. When she gently bit his upper lip, she sensed his breath faltering slightly. His dark and intense eyes were filled with desire. Just then, Mia deliberately stopped and pulled away. No sooner did she step back that she felt his arms wrap around her waist. He pulled her back toward him and kissed her. This time, he took the lead with precision and skill. It did not take long for Mia to feel overwhelmed and breathless under his assertive embrace. Soon, she was leaning weakly against his chest. Nolanâs breathing was uneven as he shifted her against the door for support. His advances became fierce and relentless. When he finally released her, Miaâs lips were numb and probably swollen. For some reason, it felt like he was punishing her. Although she was breathing heavily and covered in the scent of tobacco and mint, she did not find it unpleasant. However, she did not realize how enticing she looked. The pleading gaze in her moist eyes made her appear innocent but provocative. Passion was still in the air when the doorknob suddenly turned. Nolan calmly caressed Miaâs hair and hid her by the door before he opened it. âMr. Locke?â âWhatâs with all this racket?â Nolan responded with displeasure. With an embarrassed smile, George said, âI was looking for someone. I mustâve made a mistake.â Nolan did not have to say another word for George to scurry away. He then closed the door behind him. âThank you,â Mia said. Nolan responded, âIâll take you home in a bit. Now that George has seen you with me, he probably wonât bother you anymore.â Mia nodded obediently. As Nolan stared at her, he saw a seemingly innocent girl who was actually heartless and crafty. He felt that she could manipulate a manâs emotions effortlessly while appearing clueless and innocent. Victorâs companion, Ivy, kind of reminded him of Mia. The motion-sensor light dimmed, and an eerie silence settled in the darkness. Nolanâs sharp and possessive gaze was fixed on Mia. He seemed predatory and ready to pounce at any moment. During these tense seconds, Mia could feel him staring at her. Her heart pounded, as though it was about to leap out of her chest. Nolan took a step closer, and his tall figure loomed over her. Chapter 5 Just as Mia thought Nolan was about to do something, his phone started to vibrate in his pocket. Nolan answered the call, âWhatâs up?â âWhere are you? You vanished again after you sat down. You didnât go chasing after girls, did you?â Victorâs voice was particularly clear in the quiet environment. Nolan glanced at Mia and asked meaningfully, âWhat are you worried about?â âWhat am I worried about? Donât flatter yourself. Who is worried about you?â âYouâre worried about who Iâm with?â âI donât understand what youâre talking about. Suit yourself. I had to beg you to come out anyway,â Victor grumbled as he hung up. Mia and Nolan knew him well enough to understand that he was feeling guilty. She could not help but laugh. âOthers would think that you two were the ones in a relationship.â Nolan shot her a look as the motion sensor light came back on, and the previously ambiguous atmosphere disappeared. He then headed for the door. âLetâs go.â He was back to his distant and refined self. Mia followed him and admired his tall figure from behind. Nolan dropped Mia off at the villa where she lived with Ellen and her husband. However, Mia never told Nolan that if she did not leave with George Tate tonight, Ellen would not let it slide. Ultimately, it was a family issue. Forget Nolan, even a saint would get annoyed if he had to help more than once or twice. Anyway, Mia had guessed correctly. As soon as she arrived home, Ellen ordered Mia to kneel in the study. The study was unheated, and it was freezing in the deep winter. Mia was wearing an evening dress. Plus, she had just handed over her fur shawl to the housekeeper because the indoor heating was sufficient. Unfortunately, she was shivering in the study. Feeling resigned, Mia knelt on the floor. Her body turned stiff within minutes. Although there was a carpet, her knees ached from the hard floor. The door to the study opened, and Ellen entered with a thin whip. âTake off your clothes. Itâs not worth ruining such an expensive dress to punish you.â Mia complied and removed her gown. A huge area of her skin was then exposed. She felt cold and humiliated. Ellen whipped and scolded her for over forty minutes. When Ellen was finally tired, she left Mia in the study and went off to rest in her room. She had been drinking quite a bit, so her blows were harsher than usual. Miaâs legs had gone numb by then. With trembling hands, she picked up the gown next to her and draped it over her body. She sat in the study for a long while before her legs regained some sensation. She tried to stand but fell back down. The pain from the fresh wounds on her back was excruciating. Just then, the housekeeper, Sally, entered. She was shocked. âGood heavens! How could the madam be so harsh?!â Sally approached Mia, and her eyes welled up when she saw the wounds on Miaâs back. In this household, Sally cared for her more than her own aunt, Ellen. Soon after, Sally helped Mia back to her room. Unable to hold herself up any longer, Mia collapsed onto the bed as soon as she touched it. Her body suddenly felt heavy and extremely tired, but she forced herself to stay awake a little longer. In the end, she managed to grab her phone to call Nolan. After five or six rings, he answered the call, âHello.â His deep, magnetic voice sounded in her ear. Mia gathered her strength and tried to sound normal. âNolan, itâs me, Mia. Did you get home safely?â âYes. I just got home.â âThanks for tonight... I owe you one. Letâs have dinner sometime when youâre free.â âWeâll see.â Nolan paused, then asked, âTired?â Despite Miaâs efforts to conceal it, she sounded weak and breathless. To the uninformed, it would sound like she was on the verge of falling asleep. âYeah⌠I probably drank too much tonight.â âRest early.â Nolan was always aloof and concise. Mia said goodbye and placed her phone down before she lay on her pillow. Immediately after, Sally came in with iodine and medicine. Seeing Miaâs flushed skin and cracked, bluish lips, Sally touched her forehead. âOh! Why are you so hot? I need to tell the madam that we have to visit the hospital!â âNo⌠Ah!â Mia cried out in a panic and accidentally agitated her back wound. Even though she was a prideful person, she was still frail. The pain brought tears to her eyes, and caused her to sob softly. Sally was both distressed and anxious as she hurried back. âOkay. We wonât go. Iâll apply some medicine for you, and you can take some anti-inflammatory pills later. Have a good rest after that.â Unbeknownst to them, Miaâs phone call was still active. Confused by her fever, she never hung up, and her phone had slipped next to the pillow. Nolan had waited for her to hang up first out of politeness. However, he ended up hearing Sally checking her temperature. She was sick? No wonder she sounded so low on energy. Nolan was not one to meddle, and her fever was none of his business. Yet, for some reason, he did not end the call and continued to listen. He then discovered that Mia had been beaten upon getting home. He further learned that Ellen had sent her own niece to a lecherous man and beaten her when she failed to meet their expectations. Nolan found the Shaw family quite interesting. His assistant, Ethan Lewis, was sitting in the passenger seat. At this moment, he handed Nolan a report. âMr. Locke, please look at this reportââ Nolan raised his hand to stop him, and Ethan immediately fell silent. On the phone, Miaâs faint sobs continued. Her high fever left her weak and her voice soft. âSally... it hurts so much...â âOh, dear⌠Iâm here. Iâll stay with you⌠I feel like crying too when I see you like this. Youâve grown into such a beautiful woman. How could the madam do this?â Soon, the murmuring subsided, probably because Mia had fallen asleep. However, Nolan could still hear some faint sobbing. He finally hung up. Ethan then handed Nolan the report, and he started reviewing it attentively. âWhat do you think about the Jewel Bay tourism development project?â he casually asked. Ethan was taken aback. He did not know why Nolan would suddenly bring it up. Thinking it over, he realized that the Shaw family had secured the Jewel Bay spa project. Nolan had been quite close to Mia recently, so maybe he was considering helping her? âPolicies have been leaning toward developing new areas lately. I think itâs worthwhile for our travel investment team to assess it. But if youâre thinking of helping the Shaw familyâs company, that might be an overuse of resources.â Nolan looked up with a glint in his obsidian-like eyes. âWho says Iâm helping the Shaw family? Are they even worthy?â Ethan immediately apologized, âSorry. I was wrong to assume.â He was quite frightened. In his eight years working under Nolan, he had never seen him pull strings or make compromises for a romantic interest. Ethan knew that Nolan always prioritized business. He was famously impartial and unemotional. The only person who could get him to break this rule was the Lowe familyâs heiress. Apparently, she was about to return to the country. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12974&ut | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 818 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12974&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453219226_858735558922586_4888892143332815271_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Qrdx05Oi4zMQ7kNvgGH_2zn&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=A_0eyH__1jAQB3GbaBl1S_q&oh=00_AYB4MTbK1lMgA6RH2K9WMeRGh65WOQIMjqyU3X_BjD7HXg&oe=67194B1A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,173 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2220364}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | Ever since I was 6, I, the Alpha's only daughter, have been a slave to our entire pack, tortured and taunted by all, for I have committed the unforgivable sin. By the time I turn 22, the sin was relieved with the arrival of an demon Alpha, rumored to have killed all his nine ex-wives. ... âWhere the f..k is she?â I hear the Beta scream. I already knew Beta Kyle was talking about me, the only servant of the house. I groan and get to my feet, grabbing the cleaning basket and taking it with me. The moment Beta Kyle sees me, he strides towards me and his hand slices against my cheek. I donât make a sound. Years of experience has taught me to keep my mouth shut at all times and only speak when spoken to, even if what they are doing to me hurts. âAlpha Trey and I are expecting company and you still have not cleaned the office like you were asked.â Beta Kyle spits at me. The name of my brother makes me shiver. I am Alpha Trey's only sister, yet I was reduced to be his slave while his Beta humiliates me however he likes. I nod my head and my hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If I could just find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make my day. I resisted, he was stronger than me and I didnât need locking up for another week with no food. My stomach already hurt enough. âWe are trying to make a good impression on Alpha Dane. Do you not understand how important it is for us to join ourselves with his pack?!â I donât answer, I know it's a trick, to try and get me to say something so that he can give himself a reason to punish me. I keep my eyes low so that I didnât have to look at his face. Alpha Dane, I had only ever heard rumours about him. Words exchanged between the other pack members when I was in the room. From what I gathered, he was a ruthless man, a Wolf feared by others. He didnât mess around and he had the largest pack. Also there was this rumor that Alpha Dane had killed all his 9 mates. âHe is the Alpha of Black Shadow, the biggest pack in the world, we need him!â Beta Kyle continues. Yet he doesnât tell me why. We had never been attacked and we had never attacked anyone, so why did we need another pack to help us? He places his hands on my shoulders, digging his nails into my thinning skin and turns me around, kicking me in the back as he shoves me towards the office. âUseless fucking Wolf.â He mutters as he moves away. Quietly closing the door, I lean back against it, observing the already clean office. There was nothing out of place, it looked perfectly fine for a meeting with this so-called powerful Alpha. Closing my eyes, I slide down to the floor. I hated this house. I thought that when I turned eighteen, I could finally escape, but four years later, here I still am, a slave in my own home. Doing all the dirty tasks for my brother, Alpha Trey and the pack. While my ex mate, Beta Kyle waltzes around reminding me of how worthless I am. Suddenly I hear someone clearing their throat and I freeze, I thought I was alone. Leaning forward, I see a handsome man sitting in a chair, just around the corner. A foot propped up on his knee as he nurses a glass of alcohol. His short hair is dark and his eyes are a deep crimson colour, that donât quite look right. They suddenly shift to me and I throw myself back against the door as my heart pounded. âIs this the way you greet all Alphaâs?â His deep voice rumbles through the room, there was an edge of amusement to his tone. âIâm sorry.â I whisper, getting to my feet. âIâŚI thought I was alone.â I had no idea who he was but I could feel the power radiating off of him, even without my Wolf. He doesnât introduce himself either, why should he? âCome forward.â He orders and I already feel a lump forming in my throat. Alpha Trey was going to kill me. I step around the corner, doing as Iâm told, allowing him to see me properly. I close my eyes, expecting the worst. âYou smell funny. Yet you are a Wolf, correct?â I nod, though I couldnât tell how he was going to react. Most laughed when they found out about me. âI would prefer it if you spoke to me.â He growls, âIâm not in the mood to play games.â âYes.â I whisper. I couldnât help but think of all the punishments I was going to have to endure. A whipping maybe? Starvation for another week? âWhy do you smell strange? And how is it possible for you to not know I was in the room? You should have scented me.â âIâŚ..â I hated the question. âSpit it out, I havenât got all day!â He takes a swig from his drink. I knew why I couldnât scent him. I knew why I hadnât been aware of his presence, but telling people why was not something I ever wanted or liked to do. They never let me tell my side of the story. All they do is laugh and mock me. âYou should open your eyes when you are talking to someone. Itâs rude to not look at them. Has your Alpha not taught you anything?â His deep voice sends a shiver through me. Slowly, I open my eyes and lower them, there was no way I was making eye contact. âMy Wolf abilities were bound,â I mutter. Twice, I wanted to add. Twice my abilities were bound. But he probably wasnât interested in that part. He leans forward, carefully placing his glass on the small table next to the chair. I could feel him staring at me, âWhy would someone do that?â If this is the Alpha that my brother is supposed to be meeting with, I knew I could screw everything up for him by saying too much. âIt was a punishment.â I whisper. It wasnât far from the entire truth but it was the simplest answer I could give. Thereâs a twitch in Alpha Dane's cheek. Was he angry to hear of such a punishment? Or maybe, just like the others, he was amused by it. I couldnât tell. The door swings open and my brother screeches at me âNeah, what the f... are you doing in my office?â He turns to the crimson eyed man. âI am so sorry that my sister is bothering you, Alpha Dane.â Crap, it was him. My brother spins around, his hand stretching out to hit me. I close my eyes, bracing myself, ready to feel the burn. âI wouldnât do that if I were you.â Alpha Daneâs voice rumbles through the room. Peeking through slits, I see Alpha Dane has risen to his feet, his hand coiled around my brother's wrist. "Let go off me! It's none of your business" Trey's face turns red. Ignoring Trey's yelling, Alpha Dane says with his eyes set on me, "It is my business if she is to be my bride." I look up, my eyes filled with the same incredulity in Trey's. "Why? You want a murderer to be your bride?" "Murdered whom?" "Our parents! That little brat killed our parents when she was 6!" Trey snarls. | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,723 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458991269_1355437229166483_9082912904734246603_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=XZKXS3-63aAQ7kNvgEEaPGI&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=Aa4FXanmh5xWNDFBTIZEpKc&oh=00_AYD8AIfX15AIq4dKFfNIoXvpoDdMVJxWivbswffsd5UhDQ&oe=67194736 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,489 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222480}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
New 2024 Toyota Tacoma Hybrid TRD Sport | $52,700 | VIN:3TYLC5LN2RT006020 | LEARN_MORE | https://www.sheehytoyotafredericksburg.com/auto/ne | Sheehy Toyota of Fredericksburg | https://www.facebook.com/sheehytoyotafredericksburg/ | 3,620 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | sheehytoyotafredericksburg.com | CAROUSEL | VIN:3TYLC5LN2RT006020 | https://www.sheehytoyotafredericksburg.com/auto/new-2024-toyota-tacoma-trd-sport-fredericksburg-va/93592192?utm_medium=social&alstad_source=car&alstad_vin=3TYLC5LN2RT006020&alstad_year=2024&alstad_make=Toyota&alstad_model=Tacoma+Hybrid&alstad_condition=new&alst_action=car&alst_action_value=3TYLC5LN2RT006020 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463742818_1274080557338749_5889192855611249328_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=104&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=eG1FEmj6OZ8Q7kNvgGmg157&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=A877oYZ-oub0fULd06ntLic&oh=00_AYBTA1XwS46UxZQBkobdW3g-JYerrR8kySdrKY7EkQP9jw&oe=671946D1 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Sheehy Toyota of Fredericksburg | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,415 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Compressed Air Duster with Brushless Motor 90000RPM 3 Gear Adjustable 7500mAh Rechargeable | Compressed Air Duster with Brushless Motor 90000RPM 3 Gear Adjustable 7500mAh Rechargeable - $39.50 Compressed Air Duster, with Brushless Motor, Low Noise, Max. 90000RPM, 3 Gear Adjustable, 7500mAh Rechargeable Batteries, Non-Disposable Compressed Gas Duster Retail Price $79.99 Each, Today Special $39 Brand Reesibi Number of Pieces 1 Product Dimensions 2.36"W x 7.28"H About this item: The Compressed Air Duster are equipped with Powerful and energy-efficient brushless motor and run quieter than conventional models without harsh noise. The slide switch design not only allows for quick activation, but also effectively prevents accidental switching on. The independent switch can be easily adjusted to 3 speeds for a wide range of uses. Foldable design doesn't take up much space and is easy to store. Quick to use, plug and play, no need to assemble and disassemble for each use. The compressed air duster with 7500mAh high-quality lithium batteries that last long, and equipped with an efficient and fast Type-c charging port, it can be fully charged in about 2 hours. The portable electric air duster provides a more substantial and more continuous stream of air than compressed air cans, easily blows away accumulated dust and debris from computers, keyboards, game consoles, TVs and more. Any questions please feel free to contact us, we are always with you. Reesibi Premium Air Duster, Brushless Motor, 3 Gear Adjustable, Multi-purpose This Multipurpose Electric Air Duster with Powerful and Energy Efficient Brushless Motor, Quiet Operation, Foldable Design, Comfortable to Use! Reesibi R5 Air Duster is designed for frequent and heavy-duty use in corporate, office, and home environments. This tool not only replaces canned air dusters, it also provides you the versatility to dust, pump air, and dry with 2 unique secure, screw-on nozzle attachments. Product Name Cordless Air Duster & Cleaner Brand Reesibi Model Number R5 Motor Type Brushless Motor Motor Speed Max. 90000RPM/min, 3 Speed Settings Blowing Force 1.9-2.7oz Power Supply Cordless, 7500mAh Batteries Charge Type Type-C, Fast Charging Power Input 15W 5V-3A Power Output 90W 12V Work Light Provided Yes Tube/Nozzle Kits Yes Foldable Tube Design Yes For environmental friendliness Yes, the cleaning power is generated only by compressed air, without any other additives. The Packag Includes 1 * Duster, 1 * Nozzle Kits ( total 5ps), 1 * Cleaning Cloths, 1 * Type-C Cables, 1 * User Manual Technical Details: Brand âReesibi Item Weight â1.32 pounds Product Dimensions â2.36 x 2.36 x 7.28 inches Item model number âR5-2 Manufacturer Part Number ârr5 Introducing the ultimate solution for dust and dirt removal â the Compressed Air Duster with Brushless Motor! Say goodbye to pesky dust particles and debris with this innovative cleaning tool that combines power, efficiency, and convenience. Powerful Cleaning Performance: Equipped with a high-performance brushless motor capable of reaching speeds of up to 90,000 RPM, this Compressed Air Duster delivers unparalleled cleaning power. Blast away dust, dirt, and debris from even the tightest spaces with ease, leaving your electronics, keyboards, cameras, and delicate equipment spotless and pristine. Low Noise Operation: Experience quiet and efficient cleaning sessions thanks to the low noise design of this Air Duster. Say goodbye to the loud, disruptive noise associated with traditional compressed air cans and enjoy a peaceful cleaning experience that won't disturb your surroundings. Adjustable Settings for Precision Cleaning: Customize your cleaning experience with the Compressed Air Duster's three-gear adjustable settings. Whether you need a gentle breeze or a powerful blast of air, simply adjust the settings to suit your cleaning needs and achieve optimal results every time. Long-lasting Rechargeable Batteries: With its built-in 7500mAh rechargeable batteries, this Non-Disposable Compressed Gas Duster offers long-lasting cleaning power without the need for constant battery replacements. Simply recharge the batteries when needed and enjoy continuous cleaning sessions without interruption. Today's Special Offer: Retailing at $79.99 each, the Compressed Air Duster is now available for just $39! Don't miss out on this exclusive offer to experience the ultimate cleaning tool at an unbeatable price. Say hello to a cleaner, more efficient way to tackle dust and dirt â order now and elevate your cleaning routine to the next level! Facebook Marketplace | BUY_NOW | https://facebook.com/marketplace/item/529584169782 | Chris Lam | https://www.facebook.com/Chris-Lam-102153918942273/ | 0 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Buy now | 0 | IMAGE | https://facebook.com/marketplace/item/529584169782064/ | 1969-12-31 18:00 | REGULAR_PAGE | 1 | 1 | 0 | Chris Lam | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,327 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Read next chapter | Amidst her family's decline, she gave up the violin to become a caring canary, only to face her husband's disdain. With newfound enlightenment, she decisively divorced him and resumed her music career, which was a great success and made her ex-husband regret it! ===== Joelle Miller pored over Rebecca Lloyd's Twitter feed, studying each video with a laser-sharp attention, was eager to glimpse the face of Rebecca's boyfriend. Rebecca, the girl in the clips, exuded a soft and delicate aura in her plain white dress. She wasn't strikingly beautiful, but there was a wholesome simplicity about her, and her smile was genuinely charming. She discovered that on pivotal days--Christmas Eve, Valentine's Day, and even on Joelle's own birthday--Rebecca was with Adrian Miller, her so-called husband, who had been missing from all significant events for the past three years. Rebecca's joyful narrations and the casual snippets of her life with her boyfriend were more than enough to steep Joelle in gloom. "Do you see this? He saves the juiciest slice of watermelon just for me." "Even when he comes home late, he never forgets to bring me a little something." "And look at this--surprise! He picked up a blessing charm for me from the church." ...... The username on the account was "Countdown To Death." That was the only account Joelle followed. As she was about to reflect on the ominous name, the bathroom door swung open. In the dimly lit room, Adrian appeared, water dripped from his hair. Despite the dim lighting, his striking features were undiminished. Joelle instinctively snapped her phone shut and gazed at him, lost in thought. It had been ages since she last laid eyes on Adrian. Tonight, he was here not by choice. His grandmother, Irene Miller, was ill and desperate for a great-grandchild, which compelled him to return. Otherwise, he might never have come back. Over their three-year marriage, Adrian seldom visited home, spending most of his time at Oak Villas. It was common knowledge that he held no love for Joelle. She felt trapped in a marriage that existed in name only. "I'll give you one chance. Whether you as you wish or not is in the hands of fate," Adrian declared, his voice resonant and deep. What was he implying? Before Joelle could ponder further, Adrian seized her ankle and yanked her towards him, his shadow looming over her petite frame. Joelle's face turned pale as she faced his cruelty, her body tensed with fear. "Adrian! Stop, I don't want it..." Her words were interrupted by her own frantic struggles. Being forced into such a situation with the man she loved filled her with humiliation and terror. Adrian's sneer cut through the air. "You dared to frame me once; you should have seen this day coming. Just endure it." At his harsh words, Joelle's eyes filled with tears, her eyelashes fluttering like wounded butterflies. She looked up at his stern face, her voice trembling. "Things were not what you think..." Her protest was cut. The intense pain overwhelmed her, her resistance fading as despair took hold. She lay there, wishing for oblivion. "You've learned; playing hard to get is far more interesting than just lying there like a dead fish," he rasped, his voice laced with spite. After his shower, he departed without a backward glance, as though he couldn't leave fast enough. Before and after, his ritualistic showers seemed to cleanse him of her, as if she were a stain on his conscience. Joelle struggled to decipher her role in his life. Was she merely a plaything for his pleasure? Or a pawn to fulfill his family's expectations for an heir? The window stood wide open, letting in a biting cold wind. Joelle shivered, drawing the blanket tighter around herself. It wasn't just the chill in the air that made her tremble. Her heart felt as if it had been torn apart, a relentless icy wind whipping through its open wound. The man she had adored for nearly eight years was now a stranger to her. Three years earlier, at a lavish banquet hosted by the Miller family, Joelle had overindulged in w*ne. When she had woken up, she had found herself sleeping with Adrian. Before she could gather her thoughts, her brother and several members of the Miller family had burst into the room. What was done could not be reversed. Adrian's grandmother had taken the reins and orchestrated their marriage. All this time, Adrian was convinced that Joelle had d**gged him to trap him. Joelle had once been baffled by Adrian's profound animosity, even if he believed she had framed him. After all, they had grown up together. But now, she understood. In Adrian's eyes, she was nothing but the nefarious woman who had sabotaged his relationship with Rebecca. She often found herself pondering how perfect Adrian seemed in Rebecca's videos--always so gentle and attentive. It dawned on her that he would probably never show her that same tenderness. Eventually, Joelle couldn't hold back her tears any longer and succumbed to a sobbing breakdown. That night, her sleep was restless and disturbed. In the later hours, she found herself dreaming of their earlier days when she and Adrian hadn't been at odds. Awoken by her troubled sleep, Joelle rose unusually early. After freshening up, she slipped into some casual clothes and made her way downstairs. Leah Jenkins, the long-serving maid, noticed Joelle descending and promptly set the table with breakfast, familiar with all her dietary preferences. Joelle took her time with breakfast, eating slowly and deliberately. "Mrs. Miller, why didn't you convince Mr. Miller to stay last night? It's not often he comes home," Leah commented, her tone reflecting sympathy for Joelle. Leah had been a servant of the Miller family for many years, witnessing the growth of Joelle and Adrian from childhood friends to the enemies they were now. A pang of discomfort briefly crossed Joelle's features before she masked it with a composed smile. "I tried, but he didn't stay," she admitted. Even if she could keep Adrian close physically, his heart was elsewhere. His affections lay at Oak Villas, home to the one he truly cherished. Leah hesitated before speaking again, her tone careful. "Maybe it's because Mr. Miller is so tied up with the company. Running such a massive business takes a lot of his time." After being reassigned to attend to Joelle three years ago, Leah had come to understand the nuances of this marriage better than anyone. Her insight brought with it a heartfelt sympathy for Joelle. Joelle's eyelashes quivered as she nibbled on her toast, her eyes watering slightly from the emotional strain. Yes, Adrian was preoccupied, but he always made time for Rebecca. He frequented Redemption Church to seek a blessing charm for her. Despite his hectic schedule, he never missed spending holidays with her. Just then, Joelle's phone broke the silence. As Leah left the dining room, Joelle picked up her phone and found her best friend, Katherine Nash, calling. "Katherine, I want a divorce," Joelle said in a raspy voice. Chapter 2 On Its Last Legs Joelle made up her mind--she wanted a divorce. There was no point in dragging this out any longer. After a moment of stunned silence, Katherine let out a shrill burst of laughter. "Are you going to get half of Adrian's assets? Oh, my God! Joelle, you're about to become a billionaire!" "No, I can't." Joelle had signed an agreement when she and Adrian married. If they divorced, she would get nothing. "Then why the hell are you divorcing? Just keep being his wife!" Joelle recalled Adrian's roughness the previous night and the humiliation that followed. She had been so naive in the past, believing that her love for Adrian could help her endure any hardship. But now, looking back, she realized how foolish she had been. Did suffering ever make Adrian love her more? The answer was no. A man who genuinely loved her would never let her suffer in the first place. Joelle laughed at herself mockingly and changed the subject. "By the way, remember the favor I asked you last time?" "Yes. I was going to tell you about that. You asked me to keep an eye out for a job, and I've got something for you. You'll be teaching a student to play the violin, though I must say, it'll be a waste of your talent." "That's fine," Joelle replied with a faint smile. "It's not a waste at all. I've been a housewife for three years. Just having someone willing to hire me is enough." "How is it not a waste? You were so close to becoming a part of an international orchestra. If it weren't for getting married..." Katherine trailed off, feeling indignant for her friend. After getting married, Joelle wasn't even allowed to work. These wealthy families clung to such outdated rules. The whole situation was ridiculous. Three years ago, Joelle's violin career had been on the rise. However, the Miller family's strict traditions forbade her from performing in public. On the very first day of her marriage, Adrian's mother had told her, "You don't need to work. Adrian will provide for you. Your job is to give birth to his babies and take care of your husband." Once her call with Katherine ended, Joelle went upstairs and retrieved her long-neglected violin from the study. This violin was a special gift from her father on her eighteenth birthday. Tragically, not long after she had received it, her father had suffered a stroke and fallen into a coma. Her older brother had taken on the responsibility of supporting their family. He had let her pursue her dreams of playing the violin without worries. As she reminisced about the past, Joelle drew the bow across the strings. Years ago, an accident had injured her wrist, and she hadn't played since. Now, as she played, sharp pain shot through her wrist, but she persisted. She relied on muscle memory to play a short piece. In the end, she gave a bitter laugh. It sounded terrible. Just then, she heard Leah's voice at the door, filled with surprise and delight. "Sir, you're back!" Leah was secretly relieved to see Adrian. His returning home must mean he still cared for Joelle. Perhaps if Joelle said something kind, their relationship might improve. Meanwhile, Joelle was surprised. Adrian rarely came home during the day. She had just set down her violin when the door swung open. Adrian stood in the doorway, his tall frame imposing. With furrowed brows, his eyes swept over her. He remembered that Joelle had learned to play the violin as a child and had been praised for her talent by a renowned teacher. But for some reason, she had stopped playing. Having listened from outside just now, he found her playing mediocre. How could anyone have praised her talent? Joelle glanced at him and lowered her head to place the violin back in its case. Then, in a low voice, she asked, "What brings you here? Is there anything you need?" "I came to pick up something and remind you that we need to visit Grandma tomorrow," Adrian replied in a cold tone. Visiting his grandmother at least once a month was a family rule. Tomorrow was the day. If not for this obligation, Adrian wouldn't have returned at all. If he and Joelle didn't show up together, Irene would be upset. Joelle smiled bitterly. She remembered the Miller family rules better than Adrian and always adhered to them. Even Irene, stringent as ever, couldn't find fault with her. "I haven't forgotten. I'm relieved to know you haven't either," Joelle responded. Her tone carried a hint of accusation, making Adrian sneer. For a moment, a simmering anger brewed within him. Without another word, he headed straight to the walk-in closet to look for something. Even though he rarely came home, Joelle still maintained his wardrobe meticulously--clothes washed, ironed, and neatly arranged. Joelle felt her role was reduced to performing household chores, something Leah could also manage. Her only advantage, perhaps, was that she was younger and prettier than Leah. Her eyes followed Adrian's movements. His ring finger was bare--the wedding ring nowhere to be seen. A sharp pang of pain shot through her heart. "Adrian, let's get a divorce," Joelle suddenly said, her voice as soft as a breeze. Saying those words drained all her strength, yet she felt a strange relief wash over her. Adrian turned around and stared at her with a mocking smile. "Think carefully before you speak. The Watson family is now on its last legs. Without my support, do you plan to sleep on the streets with your brother after the divorce?" Since the Watson family's downfall, Joelle had gone from being cherished to ridiculed. The Miller family despised her and looked down on her as if she and her brother were leeches they couldn't shake off. Even her intimate moments with Adrian made her feel degraded. Joelle bit her lip and straightened up. "I've already rented a place. Even if I ended up sleeping on the streets, that would be on me." All she wanted was for Adrian to respect her, but three years of captivity had worn down her pride and dignity. "And where did you get the money to rent a place? If you wanted to be independent so badly, you shouldn't have spent a single penny from the Miller family." Adrian, with his back to Joelle, found the missing wedding ring in a gap and held it in his palm. Joelle didn't notice. His words left her breathless. Yes, she had used her meager savings to rent the place. But since she was married to Adrian, wasn't what was hers also his? Besides, the financial support Adrian had given the Watson family over the years amounted to a significant sum. Joelle had always despised the idea of owing Adrian anything, yet her debt to him was the deepest. If they divorced, he would likely sever all financial support to the Watson family. Was he suggesting she would have to exit the marriage empty-handed? As Adrian turned to leave, Joelle called out to him, her dignity barely intact. "I'm legally entitled to this marriage and have a rightful claim to what's supposed to be mine. But don't worry, I won't ask for much--just enough to help Watson Group get through this crisis." Adrian froze, his features sharpening. His lips formed a thin line, and his jaw clenched. These were clear signs of his brewing anger. Even though Joelle had mentally braced herself, she couldn't withstand the intensity of his rage. Each moment under his stern gaze intensified her anxiety. Just then, his phone rang. Adrian pulled it from his pocket and began to walk away. "Adrian!" Chapter 3 I Will Always Hold My Head High Adrian's frustration crackled in the air like static. "If your brother needs money, tell him to march straight to Miller Group." "That's not what this is about!" Joelle retorted. He misunderstood her completely. Joelle hurried after him, her heart pounding with urgency. "Adrian, I want a divorce!" At those words, Adrian stopped going upstairs and turned his head; the phone in his hand fell silent too. At six feet three inches, Adrian towered over Joelle. His gaze was cold, and when he spoke, his voice dripped with mockery. "Joelle, can't you come up with a better game than this endless push-and-pull? If you're serious about a divorce, why don't you tell Grandma yourself? If not, don't ever let me hear that word from you again!" The door slammed shut behind him, the finality of it echoing. Joelle leaned against the wall, her legs giving out beneath her until she slid to the floor. A bitter laugh escaped her lips. Their marriage had been crafted by Irene. Adrian had been forced into it, and Joelle knew it all too well. If she truly wanted a divorce, she knew talking to Irene would be the most effective route. But a small, foolish part of her had clung to the hope that she and Adrian were a real couple. That was why she had brought it up with him first--she saw him as her husband. But she had forgotten one crucial detail: Adrian had never been willing to marry her. From the start, his reluctance had been clear, though she had tried to overlook it. His last words to her weren't just dismissive--they were a command. If she was serious, she should confront Irene herself. Joelle took a shower, dressed in fresh clothes, and steeled herself to visit Irene. Irene was strict, authoritative, and feared by the entire family. She ruled with an iron fist, and disobedience was not tolerated. But Joelle shared a unique bond with her. Part of the reason Joelle had agreed to marry Adrian was to fulfill Irene's expectations. She had wanted to care for Adrian, build a home, and ensure that Irene could pass away without regret. But now, she couldn't hold on any longer. Watching Adrian lavish attention on another woman filled Joelle with a wave of bitterness that threatened to consume her. She knew Adrian didn't love her. He never had, and he never would! Just as she was about to leave, her phone rang. It was her brother, Shawn Watson. "Shawn? What's wrong?" "Mrs. Miller!" It was Shawn's assistant, and his voice was panicked--something Joelle had never heard before. Her blood ran cold, and she gripped the phone tighter as she stood at the bottom of the staircase. "Where's Shawn? What happened to him?" "Last night, Mr. Watson attended a business meeting where he was pressured to drink heavily. He was supposed to come home, but Erick Lloyd insisted on taking him to a hot spring." Joelle froze, fury surging through her veins. "Did Erick not realize that could kill him?" "Erick is a loose cannon! He's been throwing his weight around ever since his father and brother were chauffeurs for the Miller family. Mrs. Miller, you need to come quickly! Mr. Watson is still in surgery, and the doctors have issued two critical condition notices. I couldn't hold out any longer before calling you!" His voice cracked as he neared the brink of tears. Joelle knew he wouldn't have reached out unless the situation was truly desperate. Shawn had always protected her from bad news, no matter how grim the circumstances. If the assistant was this shaken, Shawn's life must be teetering on the edge. Joelle felt as if the world was closing in around her, her voice strangled in her throat. She missed the last step and tumbled hard, her ankle twisting sharply. The searing pain snapped her back to reality, tears instantly welling up in her eyes. "Oh no! Mrs. Miller, how could you not be watching your steps?" Leah rushed over and helped Joelle to her feet. Joelle clutched Leah's arm, her vision blurred by tears. She tried to speak, but the words came out choked and broken between sobs. "My brother... I have to see him at the hospital!" Sensing the urgency in her voice, Leah didn't hesitate. "Alright, don't worry. I'll get the driver to take you right away!" Leah was a seasoned and dependable maid who had served the Miller family for years. Within five minutes, the car was parked before the villa. As Joelle was about to step into the car, she turned to Leah. "Please, don't tell Irene about this. I don't want to worry her." Leah's heart softened at Joelle's words. Even in her pale, tear-streaked state, Joelle was thinking of Irene's well-being. What a rare and remarkable girl she was! "Don't worry, Mrs. Miller. I know what to do. Go see your brother." When Joelle arrived at the hospital, Shawn had just been wheeled out of surgery. Seeing Shawn hooked up to tubes and wires, the assistant nearly crumpled to the floor. As Joelle approached, she found him kneeling against the wall, his eyes bloodshot and hollow. She held back the urge to scold him for not protecting Shawn better. There would be time for that later. Once Shawn's condition stabilized, Joelle pulled the assistant aside. "Tell me everything--how did this happen?" The assistant hesitated, his face drawn with worry. "Mrs. Miller, Mr. Watson specifically instructed us not to involve you in business matters." "This is a matter of life and death. Do you still think keeping me in the dark is an option?" Joelle's patience snapped, and she turned to walk away. "Mrs. Miller, it's no use." The assistant's voice was heavy with despair. "You know that ever since your father passed, Watson Group has rested entirely on Mr. Watson's shoulders. He's been fighting to uphold the family's dignity so that your life in the Miller family would be easier." For three years, Shawn had fought valiantly to keep the family afloat. However, without Adrian's financial backing, their efforts would have crumbled long ago. Shawn's deepest wish was for Joelle to live comfortably, but despite his relentless efforts, he could never win her the respect she deserved from her husband. No matter how much Shawn sacrificed, Joelle would remain undervalued in the Miller family. Joelle's anger simmered, yet she knew she couldn't change her reality. Taking a deep breath, she asked, "Did you mention my relationship with Adrian?" She hoped that aligning herself with the Miller family could help Shawn stand his ground. "Mr. Watson refuses to bring it up. He's afraid it will only make things harder for you." Joelle let out a bitter laugh. From the beginning, she had never been able to stand on equal footing with Adrian. No wonder he despised her--she could barely tolerate herself. Just an hour ago, she had resolved to ask for a divorce. Now, she found herself clinging to Adrian's name, desperate to make life easier for Shawn. "Tell Shawn I'm Adrian Miller's wife, the one Irene handpicked. As long as I'm Mrs. Miller, I will hold my head high in the Miller family!" Footsteps echoed behind her. Joelle turned and locked eyes with Adrian's cold gaze. Beside him stood a frail-looking girl with wide, innocent eyes, clinging to Adrian openly. Adrian's glance at Joelle was filled with cold disdain, as if even acknowledging her presence was an effort. This cunning woman had d**gged him into marriage. With such deceitful tactics, how could she easily walk away from this union? The same marriage served as a lifeline for her struggling family. He had given Watson Group a hundred million each year. Joelle would be a fool to risk losing that by actually divorcing him. Chapter 4 She Finally Figured It Out Joelle had long since grown numb to Adrian's cold indifference. She quietly observed their intertwined arms, her thoughts drifting to the sweet moments captured in Rebecca's videos that had made many envious. What a perfect couple they made! The thought struck Joelle like a k*ife, and suddenly, she felt like the real third wheel. "Joelle, please don't get things wrong!" Rebecca's voice was laced with urgency as she quickly withdrew her hand from Adrian's arm. "I'm not well and can't walk far. Adie was just being kind enough to support me." Joelle managed a faint smile. "What brings you to the hospital?" she asked Adrian, deliberately ignoring Rebecca's explanation. If there was one thing Joelle had learned, it was that the best revenge against the other woman was to act as if she didn't exist. "It's about Erick," Rebecca interjected, her hands clasped in front of her like a repentant child. "I also came to say sorry to you, Joelle. Sorry about Erick being so careless and causing your brother to end up in the hospital." Joelle retorted, "Did I hear careless? Your brother nearly killed mine, and you think an apology is enough to make it right?" Rebecca flinched, instinctively clutching Adrian's sleeve for support. Adrian's voice was as cold as winter when he finally spoke. "That's enough, Joelle. It wasn't intentional." Then he turned to Rebecca, and his tone softened. "Let's go. Aren't you here to see Erick?" A wave of icy realization washed over Joelle. She had hoped naively that Adrian was here to check on Shawn. But no, he was just here for Rebecca, to see Erick. Even if he did stop by to see Shawn, it would only be out of obligation, nothing more. She knew better than to expect Adrian to defend her. "Rebecca, I won't forget what Erick did!" Joelle said. Rebecca's legs buckled, and she collapsed against Adrian's chest. He caught her just in time, holding her close. "Joelle, Erick didn't mean any harm. He's in the hospital too!" "Is he dead? If not, he has to pay for what he's done!" Joelle rarely lashed out, but today was different. Shawn was basically the only family she had left. Her father, incapacitated by a stroke, lay in a vegetative state with little or no hope of recovering, and her mother had perished in a car accident. Since she was eighteen, it had been just her and Shawn, facing the world together. During their darkest hours, Shawn had carried the burden alone, allowing Joelle to pursue her passion for the violin. Now, the thought of losing him too was unbearable. She wished nothing more than for Erick to die. "Joelle, how can you say that?" Rebecca sobbed, her voice trembling with disbelief. Adrian's patience snapped, and his eyes turned cold as they locked onto Joelle. "What do you want?" "Shawn received two critical condition notices. How about Erick?" Rebecca gasped, clinging to Adrian as if he were the only thing keeping her from collapsing, her fragile body trembling like a leaf in the wind. "Joelle, please! I only have one brother left. Show mercy, please!" She fainted before Joelle could respond, leaving no room for further argument. Adrian scooped Rebecca up, his eyes filled with cold reproach as he looked at Joelle one last time. He walked away, leaving Joelle standing there, rooted to the spot, unable to move or even think for what felt like an eternity. Before their marriage, she had been the cherished girl, but afterward, she had reduced herself to the role of Adrian's servant. Looking back, she realized how naive she had been. She used to be such a proud person, but now she endures all kinds of grievances just to please her husband. How pathetic! It's been three years, it's time to divorce and start a new life... ...... What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &5& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/60520322-fb_contact-e | Heart-warming Novel | https://www.facebook.com/61565720283161/ | 593 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | IMAGE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/60520322-fb_contact-ena220_2-0918-core2.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=157725&accid=1165464034626813&rawadid=120212618157760642 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461406225_1216589156213752_6029111600976056027_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=xbEntA4Q9YcQ7kNvgHNTcRv&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=A26zZ8b0VAlzIAqMFT2dB6o&oh=00_AYAZlztMUN4-zn71QFWSnHALaqB4Y2Hqxs45nIF0xAhGmw&oe=67194854 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Heart-warming Novel | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,506 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222499}' |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
VIEW_INSTAGRAM_PROFILE | http://instagram.com/jjbouncenplay | jjbouncenplay | https://www.instagram.com/_u/jjbouncenplay | 0 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Visit Instagram Profile | 0 | instagram.com | CAROUSEL | http://instagram.com/jjbouncenplay | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.cdninstagram.com/v/t51.2885-19/460472666_495596386697941_3712393735620082755_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s206x206&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=7fff4e&_nc_ohc=hDsaSvqnAQAQ7kNvgGcpZ6E&_nc_ht=scontent.cdninstagram.com&oh=00_AYDqMB1x-PIHc6-XR-E7wwK4wUTwT4ua8S9Gv5HCv_XsRQ&oe=671930E2 | IG_ADS_IDENTITY | 1 | 0 | 0 | jjbouncenplay | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,355 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Enamorarme de ella despuĂŠs del divorcio | Seis aĂąos despuĂŠs, en su primer dĂa de trabajo tras regresar al paĂs, se cruza con su exmarido, que inesperadamente se convierte en su nuevo jefe. Mientras ella quiere huir, ĂŠl persiste en perseguirla, ella no querĂa que ĂŠl supiera que habĂa dado a luz a su hijo... ===== Stella Richard saliĂł del aeropuerto y parĂł un taxi. Le dio la direcciĂłn al conductor y entrĂł en el coche. Mientras el taxi avanzaba, ella contemplĂł a travĂŠs de la ventana aquella ciudad que le resultaba tan familiar... DespuĂŠs de seis aĂąos, habĂa regresado, pero la experiencia y los recuerdos que habĂa intentado olvidar todos estos aĂąos, empezaron a invadir su mente... Ella sacudiĂł la cabeza y ahuyentĂł esos pensamientos. En esta ocasiĂłn, no habĂa vuelto para pensar o develar esos viejos e inĂştiles recuerdos. HabĂa vuelto porque su jefe se lo habĂa pedido. Ăl le habĂa dicho que su compaĂąĂa estaba en un callejĂłn sin salida, y querĂa que ella volviera y resolviera la crisis. Al principio, ella no habĂa querido regresar, pero despuĂŠs de pensarlo un poco, decidiĂł hacerlo... Dado que hace seis aĂąos habĂa sido su jefe quien la habĂa ayudado en el momento mĂĄs difĂcil de su vida, y querĂa devolverle el favor... En cuanto a otras cosas, ya no le importaban... En la compaĂąĂa... Cuando llegĂł, vio que la mayorĂa de los empleados estaban hablando del mismo tema... Mientras pasaba a su lado, escuchĂł unas palabras... "OĂ que muchas empresas quieren comprar la nuestra..." "ÂĄEn serio! Significa que tendremos un nuevo jefe". "Solo espero que ese nuevo jefe sea guapo, como el director ejecutivo de un drama coreano..." "ÂĄOye! ÂżSabes quiĂŠn quiere comprarla?" Stella escuchaba todas sus conversaciones y no le importaban los chismes. SabĂa que a esa gente no le importaba quiĂŠn iba a comprar la empresa o cuĂĄl serĂa el precio... Lo Ăşnico que querĂan era chismorrear. Pero a ella... A ella le importaba... y estaba allĂ para conseguir un buen trato. "Por supuesto, serĂĄ la de Kingston, Grupos RK. En la ciudad, ÂżquiĂŠn es mĂĄs poderoso que RK y se atreverĂa a ir en contra de ellos...?" Stella quien estaba a punto de dar un paso se detuvo... Porque escuchĂł un nombre muy familiar y otro desconocido... "Los Kingston..." "Grupos RK..." De repente, los recuerdos que habĂa sellado en algĂşn rincĂłn de su mente empezaron a resurgir como una tormenta. Su cabeza se llenĂł de ellos como una inundaciĂłn. Se sintiĂł mareada. SintiĂł como si aĂşn estuviera encerrada en la MansiĂłn RK, rodeada de frĂas paredes... PensĂł que hacĂa tiempo que lo habĂa olvidado, pero al parecer solo era ilusiĂłn suya... **** Flashback... Hace seis aĂąos... En la MansiĂłn RK... Stella cruzĂł la puerta y se dirigiĂł a la sala de estar, su rostro no tenĂa buen aspecto. Ella se veĂa seria y aturdida... Su pequeĂąa cara lucĂa un poco pĂĄlida. "SeĂąora, ÂżquĂŠ le ha pasado? ÂżPor quĂŠ se ve tan pĂĄlida y dĂŠbil?" La que hablĂł fue Mia. Ella llevaba aĂąos trabajando para Kingston y siempre habĂa tratado a Stella como a una hija. Al verla en ese estado se preocupĂł. Su mirada se posĂł en los documentos que Stella sostenĂa y le preguntĂł... "ÂżEstĂĄ todo bien?" Stella la mirĂł, forzĂł una sonrisa y respondiĂł... "No es nada, estoy bien". "Pero tu cara no tiene buen aspecto. ÂżQuĂŠ tal si te preparo algo? Tu plato favorito, Aaloo Poori...", dijo Mia. "Mia... No te preocupes, estoy bien, es solo que..." Stella mirĂł los papeles y dijo: "No he menstruado en dos meses, y cuando fui al hospital..." No terminĂł la frase y la mirĂł. Sus ojos estaban llenos de ilusiĂłn y preocupaciĂłn... Ambas se miraron. Mia comprendiĂł lo que querĂa decir. Estaba embarazada. Pero ella tambiĂŠn conocĂa la relaciĂłn que existĂa entre el Sr. RK y Stella. No sabĂa quĂŠ decir... Al final, se limitĂł a felicitarla... Stella no dijo nada y volviĂł a mirar los papeles. No sabĂa quĂŠ decir... Llevaba tres aĂąos casada con Rene Kingston. Sin embargo, no se habĂan casado por amor... Su matrimonio era un simple contrato, cuyo tiempo lĂmite era de tres aĂąos. Porque la mujer que ĂŠl amaba era su hermana... Ăl habĂa estado a punto de casarse con su hermana Sophia, pero por alguna razĂłn, ella la reemplazĂł. AsĂ que desde el dĂa en que se casaron, ĂŠl le dijo que su matrimonio era solo un contrato y nada mĂĄs... Para ĂŠl era un mero convenio, pero para ella era un hermoso regalo de Dios. Porque solo ella sabĂa lo feliz que se habĂa sentido cuando supo que se iba a casar con el... La persona a la que habĂa amado durante toda su juventud. Todos esos aĂąos ella se esforzĂł al mĂĄximo en su matrimonio con la esperanza, de que tal vez asĂ, este funcionarĂa. Tal vez ĂŠl no se divorciarĂa de ella. Tal vez, ĂŠl tambiĂŠn querrĂa quedarse con ella... Tal vez, ĂŠl darĂa una oportunidad a su relaciĂłn porque bien del bebĂŠ... Ella seguĂa pensando en eso cuando, de repente, una voz se oyĂł desde la puerta y rompiĂł todas sus esperanzas e ilusiones... "No quiero a ese niĂąo..." Aquella voz era frĂa y dura. Stella y Mia miraron en la direcciĂłn de la voz. RK estaba en la puerta y la miraba. Su rostro era frĂo e inexpresivo. No podĂan saber lo que estaba pensando. TenĂa una cara muy atractiva y ojos azules. Eran como las profundidades del ocĂŠano. Silos mirabas... ...Te podrĂas ahogar en ellos. CapĂtulo 2 No soy la mujer correcta RK entrĂł y se colocĂł delante de Stella. Ăl parecĂa un rey que ocupaba la posiciĂłn mĂĄs alta del mundo y miraba a la gente como si no fueran insignificantes. Era alto y tenĂa un aura poderosa. Ella estaba sentada en el sofĂĄ, y estaba rodeada por esta. Ella se quedĂł allĂ mirĂĄndolo, porque sus palabras la habĂan dejado estupefacta. Nunca pensĂł que tuviera la sangre tan frĂa como para no pensĂĄrselo dos veces antes de decir algo asĂ. No habĂa vacilado cuando dijo que no querĂa a ese niĂąo. Ella lo observĂł, intentĂł calmarse y contener las lĂĄgrimas. No querĂa parecer dĂŠbil ante aquel frĂo hombre. Los dos se miraron sin decir nada... Al cabo de un rato, ĂŠl se acercĂł y se sentĂł frente a ella. Cuando lo hizo, su ayudante Alex Triston puso unos papeles sobre la mesa. Encima de ellos habĂa dos palabras escritas: "Contrato expirado". Alex la mirĂł y dijo: "Srta. Richard, su contrato de tres aĂąos con el Sr. RK ha concluido. Ahora solo falta que ambos firmen y lo envĂen". EscuchĂł como ĂŠl habĂa cambiado su forma de dirigirse a ella, incluso antes de que firmara, por lo que una sonrisa burlona se dibujĂł en su rostro. Ella estaba segura de que, ĂŠl no se atreverĂa a tomarla tan a la ligera, si no fuera porque alguien se lo habĂa ordenado. Por supuesto, ese alguien no era otro que su marido. RK tomĂł la pluma y firmĂł sin detenerse ni pensarlo. Cuando terminĂł, la mirĂł y le dijo: "Puedes quedarte aquĂ por una semana y buscar una casa..." Ella lo mirĂł a los ojos, los cuales estaban tranquilos como un lago... No habĂa arrepentimiento, tristeza, vacilaciĂłn... Nada. Era como si ĂŠl no sintiera nada con respecto a su relaciĂłn, la cual repentinamente habĂa sufrido un gran cambio... Sin embargo, cuando ese pensamiento se le vino a la mente, se reprendiĂł a sĂ misma... "Stella, Âżeres una tonta?" "ÂżCĂłmo puedes esperar arrepentimiento y tristeza de un hombre con un corazĂłn de piedra?" No obstante, no podĂa controlar sus emociones... Porque ella lo habĂa amado durante muchos aĂąos. No dijo nada y se limitĂł a observar a esa persona con la que habĂa vivido durante tres aĂąos. HabĂa visto su cara todos los dĂas, y aĂşn ahora, cuando lo contemplaba, le seguĂa pareciendo muy guapo... Pero... Era el hombre que le habĂa roto el corazĂłn en mil pedazos. No querĂa mostrarse dĂŠbil delante de ĂŠl, asĂ que hizo todo lo posible por no llorar. La mano que sostenĂa la pluma le temblaba... MirĂł los papeles, vio su hermosa y fuerte caligrafĂa y firmĂł. Pero al igual que su corazĂłn, su letra tambiĂŠn parecĂa maltrecha. Ella estaba rota por dentro, pero su rostro no lo demostraba. DespuĂŠs de firmar, respirĂł hondo y dijo: "Estoy muy agradecida con el Sr. Kingston por dejar que me quede una semana, pero despuĂŠs de que expire nuestro contrato no creo que deba permanecer aquĂ. Me irĂŠ inmediatamente..." Cuando terminĂł de hablar, mirĂł a Mia y le preguntĂł: "Mia Âżpuedes ayudarme a empacar mis cosas?" Ella la mirĂł, se dio cuenta de lo mucho que intentaba no llorar y le doliĂł el corazĂłn. No querĂa hacerlo, pero tenĂa que ser asĂ. Stella subiĂł para recoger sus cosas y RK la observĂł, pero nadie podĂa leer sus emociones. Ella mirĂł la habitaciĂłn donde habĂa estado viviendo durante tres aĂąos y sus ojos se empaĂąaron... No pudo contener las lĂĄgrimas. SabĂa que su matrimonio terminarĂa algĂşn dĂa, pero no sabĂa por quĂŠ sentĂa tanto dolor en su corazĂłn... No tenĂa muchas cosas que guardar. Se limitĂł a empacar y no tocĂł nada de lo que ĂŠl le habĂa comprado. Ni siquiera una prenda... Mia la mirĂł y no supo quĂŠ decir... Stella se secĂł las lĂĄgrimas y le dijo: "Mia no te preocupes. Estoy bien. Es solo que no soy la mujer correcta para ĂŠl". DespuĂŠs de decir eso, tomĂł su bolso y bajĂł las escaleras. **** En la planta inferior... RK seguĂa sentado en el sofĂĄ y la miraba, pero ella no deseaba verlo y estaba dispuesta a marcharse... "ÂżA dĂłnde vas?" De repente sonĂł la frĂa voz de aquel hombre. Ella se detuvo y lo mirĂł... Desde el principio, ella no estaba en buenos tĂŠrminos con su familia y despuĂŠs de su matrimonio, era mucho mĂĄs difĂcil tratar con ellos... En cuanto a ĂŠl, ya se habĂan divorciado, asĂ que no se sentĂa obligada a decirle a dĂłnde iba... "No creo que mi paradero tenga algo que ver con el Sr. Kingston. Creo que ahora que ya estamos divorciados y no tenemos nada que ver el uno con el otro, usted debe concentrarse en su futura esposa, y no en su exmujer..." Ella no entendĂa el comportamiento hipĂłcrita de ese hombre. Cuando estaban juntos y ella estaba en casa ardiendo en fiebre ni siquiera habĂa mostrado preocupaciĂłn por ella... En ese momento, ĂŠl estaba ocupado con sus negocios y ganando dinero... No le habĂa importado que su esposa se estuviera muriendo. De repente, ella no supo por quĂŠ, o si era una ilusiĂłn, pero sintiĂł que despuĂŠs de decir eso sobre una futura esposa, la temperatura a su alrededor bajĂł mucho... SintiĂł frĂo en todo su cuerpo y decidiĂł irse... "Detente... " CapĂtulo 3 No quiero a ese niĂąo Stella lo escuchĂł y se detuvo. Albergaba un poco de esperanza en su corazĂłn. Los ojos del hombre eran oscuros y frĂos. Estos se llenaron de algunos pensamientos misteriosos y una capa de niebla los envolviĂł. De repente, dijo: "No quiero a ese niĂąo. No olvides abortar". RK mirĂł a la mujer que tenĂa delante y se quedĂł pensando... SentĂa que ella era pura y hermosa, por eso no querĂa que lidiara con su carga. La mano de Stella, la cual cargaba su equipaje, temblĂł y la pequeĂąa esperanza que tenĂa se desvaneciĂł... Ăl le habĂa roto el corazĂłn tantas veces, no sabĂa por quĂŠ, pero todavĂa le dolĂa con la misma intensidad cada vez que sucedĂa... "Booooom". Sus palabras explotaron en su cabeza como una bomba. ApretĂł la bolsa que sostenĂa. Y sintiĂł como si alguien la hubiera apuĂąalado... De repente se rio de sĂ misma... Se sintiĂł como una tonta. ÂżCĂłmo podĂa esperar algo de un hombre tan frĂo con su hijo...? QuerĂa gritarle, pero al final no dijo nada... Ăl le habĂa dicho una vez que le gustaban los niĂąos y por, pero... Era como si le gustaran, pero no para tenerlos con ELLA... Le dolĂa mucho el corazĂłn, pero no querĂa que ĂŠl viera sus lĂĄgrimas. Se dio la vuelta y quedĂł de espaldas a ĂŠl. RespirĂł hondo y dijo: "Sr. Kingston no lo piense demasiado. Yo tampoco lo quiero. Ya habĂa decidido abortarlo". Estaba a punto de irse, pero se parĂł y dijo: "Una cosa mĂĄs, espero que no nos volvamos a ver en esta vida..." DespuĂŠs de decir eso, se fue. Al principio, ella no querĂa dejar ese lugar, pero ahora... SentĂa que se estaba sofocando... SujetĂł su bolso con fuerza y se marchĂł sin mirar atrĂĄs. RK mirĂł la espalda de la mujer, la cual luchaba por mantenerse derecha y no tambalearse... Sus ojos se oscurecieron y se llenaron de algunas emociones ilegibles... Hasta que la figura de la mujer desapareciĂł de su vista, su espalda tensa se relajĂł y dijo... "Conduce..." Cuando el hombre dio la orden, el conductor no esperĂł ni un segundo y pisĂł el acelerador. Entonces, el coche negro se alejĂł y desapareciĂł... *Fin del flashback* "Lo siento, no te vi..." De repente un hombre chocĂł con ella, quien estaba de pie en el pasillo. Los documentos se le cayeron al suelo. Sin embargo, debido a esto ella tambiĂŠn volviĂł a la realidad... "No, lo siento", le dijo, lo ayudĂł a recogerlos y entrĂł en el ascensor. Cuando la puerta se abriĂł, Jack Paul, quien estaba afuera, la saludĂł... La miro con una sonrisa y le dijo: "Stella llegaste. ÂżCĂłmo estĂĄs? Eres nueva aquĂ, si necesitas algo no dudes en decĂrmelo..." Ella lo mirĂł y asintiĂł. "Estoy bien, gracias". Mientras hablaban, caminaron hasta su despacho y se sentaron. Ăl la mirĂł y le dijo: "Estoy muy contento de que hayas aceptado mi oferta y hayas vuelto". Le dio una carpeta roja y le dijo: "Estoy seguro de que has oĂdo que alguien quiere comprar nuestra empresa. En esta carpeta estĂĄn los informes que hice, ĂŠchales un vistazo". Ella la tomĂł y asintiĂł. Ăl continuĂł: "Hay muchas empresas que quieren comprar la nuestra, pero entre todas ellas estĂĄn los Grupos RK. No obstante, el precio que nos ofrecieron fue demasiado bajo..." Hizo una pausa y dijo: "Esta vez te pedĂ que volvieras para que pudieras darle la vuelta a la situaciĂłn..." "Grupos RK... RenĂŠ Kingston..." Sus manos temblaron mientras sostenĂa los documentos. Los recuerdos que estaban en lo mĂĄs profundo de su hermĂŠtico corazĂłn invadieron su mente... su mente... Ella se tranquilizĂł y dijo: "HarĂŠ lo que pueda". "EstĂĄ bien". Jack se rio y dijo: "Ahora que has aceptado esta tarea ya no estoy preocupado". CapĂtulo 4 ÂżPor quĂŠ vale setenta millones? Al dĂa siguiente, en una cafeterĂa... Stella ya habĂa organizado todo y le pidiĂł al director de negociaciĂłn de los Grupos RK que se reunieran en una cafeterĂa. Mientras lo esperaba, un hombre vestido con un traje negro y gafas de montura dorada se acercĂł. Pero cuando⌠llegĂł y la vio, se sorprendiĂł. Ella tambiĂŠn se quedĂł estupefacta al mirar a la persona que tenĂa delante. Porque, quien estaba frente a ella era el asistente de RK, Alex Triston. Por un momento, ambos se quedaron callados. Fue ella quien tomĂł la iniciativa y dijo: "CuĂĄnto tiempo sin vernos". Ăl escuchĂł sus palabras y recobrĂł la compostura. AsintiĂł y se sentĂł. Ella no perdiĂł el tiempo y fue directo al grano. "Sr. Triston aquĂ estĂĄn los documentos, si le parece bien, por favor, fĂrmelos". Mientras lo decĂa, los colocĂł delante de ĂŠl. Ăl vio el impactante precio de setenta millones y se escandalizĂł. "Srta. Richard, los Grupos RK solo pueden ofrecer cuarenta millones. El precio propuesto por su empresa es extremadamente alto". Desde el principio, ella no querĂa firmar ese contrato. Nunca permitirĂĄ que ese hombre se convierta en su jefe. Ella sentĂa que estaba perdiendo su tiempo, deberĂa buscar alguna otra compaĂąĂa. "EstĂĄ bien, pero no podemos firmar". Dijo recogiendo sus cosas y decidida a irse. Alex vio que estaba a punto de marcharse y que no estaba interesada en el trato por lo que se asustĂł. Se le acercĂł y la detuvo. "Srta. por favor espere, dĂŠjeme llamar y preguntar sobre el precio una vez mĂĄs". Ella se detuvo y asintiĂł. "Por supuesto". Ăl caminĂł hacia un lado y llamĂł. **** En los Grupos RK, oficina del director general... RK estaba sentado en la cabecera y escuchaba el informe del departamento de marketing cuando su telĂŠfono sonĂł. Lo mirĂł y colgĂł. No le gustaba que lo molestaran en el trabajo. Sin embargo, al cabo de unos segundos, volviĂł a sonar. Los que estaban en la oficina vieron su frĂa expresiĂłn y temblaron. TomĂł el telĂŠfono y preguntĂł: "ÂżQuĂŠ sucede?" Su voz era frĂa. Alex le informĂł de toda la situaciĂłn. "Diles, que eso no va a suceder setenta millones es demasiado. No lo valen". Cuando terminĂł de hablar, se dispuso a colgar... Pero su asistente le dijo algo que hizo que se detuviera a pensar por un momento. Sus dedos golpearon la mesa y despuĂŠs de un minuto respondiĂł: "De acuerdo, aceptemos setenta millones". DespuĂŠs hizo una pausa y aĂąadiĂł: "Dile que irĂŠ a la empresa y que quiero que me explique personalmente por quĂŠ vale setenta millones". DespuĂŠs colgĂł. En sus profundos ojos azules habĂa emociones desconocidas. La gente del departamento de marketing escuchĂł sus palabras y se sorprendieron. "El director general va a firmar personalmente el contrato". "ÂżEra esa negociaciĂłn digna de su visita?". AdemĂĄs, sabĂan que Raksham no necesitaba involucrarse personalmente en ese trato. Todos ellos cuestionaban la situaciĂłn. **** Alex no estaba hablando demasiado lejos asĂ que ella pudo oĂr una parte de su conversaciĂłn. Ella lo escuchĂł decir su nombre directamente, a la persona al otro lado del telĂŠfono. Tres minutos despuĂŠs... "ÂĄSrta. Richard, espere! El Sr. Kingston dijo que no tiene ningĂşn problema con el precio. El acuerdo se fijarĂĄ segĂşn los tĂŠrminos de su empresa, firmemos rĂĄpidamente para que nadie se eche para atrĂĄs". Cuando terminĂł de hablar, sacĂł los documentos, firmĂł y le dio el bolĂgrafo. Ella se sorprendiĂł un poco al ver su actitud arrogante, era como si ya hubiera comprado la empresa. MirĂł el bolĂgrafo aturdida. No se imaginaba que el acuerdo entre los dos fuera a salir tan bien y sin esfuerzo. Ella sintiĂł que habĂa dejado clara su postura al no querer bajar el precio y que se habĂa mantenido bastante firme en su decisiĂłn. Pero quien iba a decirlo. RK se habĂa mostrado mucho mĂĄs firme que ella respecto a la adquisiciĂłn de la compaĂąĂa. Incluso aceptĂł firmar el contrato pagando el precio que ella habĂa establecido. "A ĂŠl no le gustaba cambiar de decisiĂłn pasara lo que pasara. Entonces, Âżpor quĂŠ lo habĂa hecho?" "ÂżEra porque, despuĂŠs de vivir con el amor de su vida, ĂŠl habĂa cambiado?" PensĂł... Pero sin importar quĂŠ... Ahora, ÂżquĂŠ podĂa hacer? TomĂł el bolĂgrafo y firmĂł. A ella no le importaba nada que tuviera que ver con ĂŠl...de todos modos, ella no iba a quedarse allĂ. de todos modos, ella no iba a quedarse allĂ. Normalmente, ella no querrĂa que ĂŠl se convirtiera en su jefe, pero... ÂżQuĂŠ podĂa hacer? DebĂa terminar ese trabajo y marcharse rĂĄpidamente. Alex guardĂł los documentos, le dio la mano y dijo: "Srta. Richard a partir de ahora somos compaĂąeros de trabajo en la misma empresa. En el futuro, ÂĄpor favor, cuide de nosotros!" Ella solo le dedicĂł una sonrisa forzada. Solo su corazĂłn y Dios sabĂan cuĂĄnto deseaba que aquel hombre fuera su jefe. Ăl la mirĂł y aĂąadiĂł: "Por favor, vuelva rĂĄpido a su empresa, el Sr. Kingston estarĂĄ allĂ dentro de un rato. Ha dicho que quiere que usted... le explique personalmente por quĂŠ vale setenta millones". Tampoco sabĂa por quĂŠ su jefe querĂa que ella se lo dijera personalmente, teniendo en cuenta lo que habĂa pasado entre ellos. Pero como asistente, solo podĂa hacer lo que ĂŠl dijera. ***** De regreso en la empresa... Ella estaba sentada dentro de su coche, pero su mente estaba llena de pensamientos de cĂłmo en el futuro RK se convertirĂĄ en su jefe. "ÂĄAhhh! Stella, eres la mejor. Acabas de cerrar el contrato en cuanto apareciste". El que hablaba era la asistente del director de la empresa. "No sabes, antes de que vinieras, el Sr. Paul habĂa enviado a mucha gente a negociar con el Sr. Kingston, pero ĂŠl solo bajaba el precio". La abrazĂł y le dijo alegremente: "Stella eres nuestra estrella de la suerte". Ella bajĂł la cabeza y no dijo nada, porque eso no era lo que ella querĂa. Lily continuĂł: "Acabas de llegar, asĂ que no debes conocer muy bien la ciudad". Mientras decĂa eso se acercĂł a su oĂdo y dijo: "DĂŠjame decirte que el Sr. Kingston es el hombre mĂĄs guapo de ciudad X. No solo es apuesto, sino tambiĂŠn rico y competente. Es el hombre de los sueĂąos de muchas mujeres del mundo..." Al oĂr sus palabras, Stella se quedĂł sin palabras. "He oĂdo que antes tenĂa una prometida... Pero la dejĂł hace seis aĂąos", comentĂł Lily. "ÂżNo se casĂł con la hermana de esa chica?" Ella no podĂa creer que aĂşn no se hubieran casado. ÂżNo se habĂa divorciado de ella porque querĂa casarse con su hermana? PensĂł que ya deberĂan haberlo hecho, tenido hijos y vivido felices el uno con el otro. "Stella, aquĂ estĂĄs..." Cuando Jack se enterĂł de que ella habĂa llegado a un acuerdo con los Grupos RK, acudiĂł personalmente a recibirla con una gran sonrisa en la cara. "Stella, no me has decepcionado... RĂĄpido ve a la sala de reuniones y siĂŠntate un rato. El Sr. Kingston llegarĂĄ pronto y vendrĂĄs conmigo para darle la bienvenida..." "No quiero ir..." Inconscientemente, esas palabras salieron de la boca de Stella. Cuando se dio cuenta de lo que habĂa dicho, hizo una pausa y dijo: "Sr. Paul, lamento mi comportamiento, pero no quiero ir..." Su voz era firme. "Como usted sabe yo acabo de regresar a causa de este contrato. Ahora que todo estĂĄ en marcha, quiero volver a Francia y trabajar en la oficina central de la empresa como antes". DespuĂŠs de su divorcio y de lo ocurrido hace seis aĂąos... no querĂa volver a ver a ese hombre. Sus palabras... "No quiero a ese niĂąo..." TodavĂa resonaban en su mente. DespuĂŠs de regresar... no querĂa verlo. Ese hombre de sangre frĂa y corazĂłn de piedra ya le habĂa roto el corazĂłn mil veces, y no querĂa volver a experimentar ese dolor. Tal vez en el fondo no era capaz de olvidarlo por completo o tal vez habĂa algo mĂĄs... Sin embargo, estaba segura de una cosa: no querĂa encontrarse con ĂŠl. Si aĂşn quedaba un poco de amor en su interior, querĂa eliminarlo lo antes posible y mantenerse alejada de ĂŠl. Jack la mirĂł y le dijo: "No es que no quiera que vuelvas, pero ahora sabes que la compaĂąĂa fue comprada por el Sr. RK, y si te vas del paĂs o no... SerĂĄ decisiĂłn de ĂŠl..." ÂżQuĂŠ? Hace seis aĂąos, su matrimonio habĂa estado en sus manos, y ahora su trabajo... Ella se resistĂa a dejar que ĂŠl decidiera su futuro... Se sentĂa como si hubiera caĂdo en una trampa. Ella querĂa permanecer lo mĂĄs lejos posible de ĂŠl. Jack la mirĂł a la cara y supo que no se encontraba de buen humor por lo que le dijo: "De acuerdo, entonces vete y descansa un poco. DespuĂŠs de que el Sr. RK se haga cargo de la empresa, puedes solicitar tu permiso de nuevo..." "SolicĂtaselo..." Ahora, ĂŠl decidirĂa si se iba o no. Cuando pensĂł en aquello, sintiĂł como si su cabeza estuviera a punto de explotar... Ahora mismo, ella no querĂa nada... Solo deseaba irse de ese lugar. SabĂa que ĂŠl llegarĂa en cualquier momento y que existĂa la posibilidad de encontrarse con ĂŠl. AsĂ que, al menos por ahora, lo mejor para ella era marcharse lo mĂĄs rĂĄpido posible, para poder evitarlo... No dijo nada y se dispuso a retirarse. Pero justo cuando dio el primer paso, oyĂł a alguien... "Sr. Rk..." ...... ==== Stella Richard se casĂł con Rene Kingston en lugar de su hermana Sophia por algunas razones. Pero desde el principio, ella sabe que su matrimonio era solo un contrato por tiempo lĂmite y una vez que se cumpliĂł el tiempo, ella tenĂa que irse. Para RK, este matrimonio fue solo una carga, pero para ella fue un regalo de Dios. Porque RK era el hombre al que habĂa amado toda su juventud... Entonces, mientras tanto de su matrimonio, Stella hizo todo lo posible para que este matrimonio funcionara. Pero el dĂa que descubriĂł que estaba embarazada, su esposo le dio el papel de divorcio y le dijo... "No quiero a este niĂąo. No olvides abortar". Estas palabras salen de su boca, como una bomba para Stella, y cambiaron su vida... Ella firmĂł su nombre en el papel de divorcio y saliĂł de la casa, porque ella no quiere estar con un hombre tan frĂo. Seis aĂąos despuĂŠs, RK comprĂł la empresa en la que trabajaba Stella. Pero Stella hizo todo lo posible por no tener nada que ver con ĂŠl, porque ella tenĂa un hijo y no querĂa que ĂŠl se enterara de ĂŠl... Pero un dĂa, cuando Stella recogiĂł a su hijo de la escuela, ĂŠl la vio... RK su mirada se posĂł en el niĂąo a su lado, su rostro se veĂa igual que cuando era joven... ÂżQuĂŠ sucederĂĄ en adelante? Los capĂtulos disponibles son limitados aquĂ, haga click el botĂłn abajo para instalar APP y disfrutar leyendo mĂĄs contenidos maravillosos. (Al abrir el APP, directo accederĂĄ a este libro) &5& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14128375-fb_contact-spc | Beloved Books | https://www.facebook.com/61565799023858/ | 525 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.manobook.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14128375-fb_contact-spcp23_2-240914-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=060236&accid=911653190288373&rawadid=120212759297740521 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461302624_924680502843724_3935394547272436470_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Kw1sqRx4X9EQ7kNvgGsNcIr&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=AHIeokV6u4oFAzSsgaAWimv&oh=00_AYAxOvAvW0d-fgPHno6HGldsdiM1o5IJPB8w39Z0NFgh9w&oe=67191C8A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Beloved Books | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,175 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2220364}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | Ever since I was 6, I, the Alpha's only daughter, have been a slave to our entire pack, tortured and taunted by all, for I have committed the unforgivable sin. By the time I turn 22, the sin was relieved with the arrival of an demon Alpha, rumored to have killed all his nine ex-wives. ... âWhere the f..k is she?â I hear the Beta scream. I already knew Beta Kyle was talking about me, the only servant of the house. I groan and get to my feet, grabbing the cleaning basket and taking it with me. The moment Beta Kyle sees me, he strides towards me and his hand slices against my cheek. I donât make a sound. Years of experience has taught me to keep my mouth shut at all times and only speak when spoken to, even if what they are doing to me hurts. âAlpha Trey and I are expecting company and you still have not cleaned the office like you were asked.â Beta Kyle spits at me. The name of my brother makes me shiver. I am Alpha Trey's only sister, yet I was reduced to be his slave while his Beta humiliates me however he likes. I nod my head and my hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If I could just find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make my day. I resisted, he was stronger than me and I didnât need locking up for another week with no food. My stomach already hurt enough. âWe are trying to make a good impression on Alpha Dane. Do you not understand how important it is for us to join ourselves with his pack?!â I donât answer, I know it's a trick, to try and get me to say something so that he can give himself a reason to punish me. I keep my eyes low so that I didnât have to look at his face. Alpha Dane, I had only ever heard rumours about him. Words exchanged between the other pack members when I was in the room. From what I gathered, he was a ruthless man, a Wolf feared by others. He didnât mess around and he had the largest pack. Also there was this rumor that Alpha Dane had killed all his 9 mates. âHe is the Alpha of Black Shadow, the biggest pack in the world, we need him!â Beta Kyle continues. Yet he doesnât tell me why. We had never been attacked and we had never attacked anyone, so why did we need another pack to help us? He places his hands on my shoulders, digging his nails into my thinning skin and turns me around, kicking me in the back as he shoves me towards the office. âUseless fucking Wolf.â He mutters as he moves away. Quietly closing the door, I lean back against it, observing the already clean office. There was nothing out of place, it looked perfectly fine for a meeting with this so-called powerful Alpha. Closing my eyes, I slide down to the floor. I hated this house. I thought that when I turned eighteen, I could finally escape, but four years later, here I still am, a slave in my own home. Doing all the dirty tasks for my brother, Alpha Trey and the pack. While my ex mate, Beta Kyle waltzes around reminding me of how worthless I am. Suddenly I hear someone clearing their throat and I freeze, I thought I was alone. Leaning forward, I see a handsome man sitting in a chair, just around the corner. A foot propped up on his knee as he nurses a glass of alcohol. His short hair is dark and his eyes are a deep crimson colour, that donât quite look right. They suddenly shift to me and I throw myself back against the door as my heart pounded. âIs this the way you greet all Alphaâs?â His deep voice rumbles through the room, there was an edge of amusement to his tone. âIâm sorry.â I whisper, getting to my feet. âIâŚI thought I was alone.â I had no idea who he was but I could feel the power radiating off of him, even without my Wolf. He doesnât introduce himself either, why should he? âCome forward.â He orders and I already feel a lump forming in my throat. Alpha Trey was going to kill me. I step around the corner, doing as Iâm told, allowing him to see me properly. I close my eyes, expecting the worst. âYou smell funny. Yet you are a Wolf, correct?â I nod, though I couldnât tell how he was going to react. Most laughed when they found out about me. âI would prefer it if you spoke to me.â He growls, âIâm not in the mood to play games.â âYes.â I whisper. I couldnât help but think of all the punishments I was going to have to endure. A whipping maybe? Starvation for another week? âWhy do you smell strange? And how is it possible for you to not know I was in the room? You should have scented me.â âIâŚ..â I hated the question. âSpit it out, I havenât got all day!â He takes a swig from his drink. I knew why I couldnât scent him. I knew why I hadnât been aware of his presence, but telling people why was not something I ever wanted or liked to do. They never let me tell my side of the story. All they do is laugh and mock me. âYou should open your eyes when you are talking to someone. Itâs rude to not look at them. Has your Alpha not taught you anything?â His deep voice sends a shiver through me. Slowly, I open my eyes and lower them, there was no way I was making eye contact. âMy Wolf abilities were bound,â I mutter. Twice, I wanted to add. Twice my abilities were bound. But he probably wasnât interested in that part. He leans forward, carefully placing his glass on the small table next to the chair. I could feel him staring at me, âWhy would someone do that?â If this is the Alpha that my brother is supposed to be meeting with, I knew I could screw everything up for him by saying too much. âIt was a punishment.â I whisper. It wasnât far from the entire truth but it was the simplest answer I could give. Thereâs a twitch in Alpha Dane's cheek. Was he angry to hear of such a punishment? Or maybe, just like the others, he was amused by it. I couldnât tell. The door swings open and my brother screeches at me âNeah, what the f... are you doing in my office?â He turns to the crimson eyed man. âI am so sorry that my sister is bothering you, Alpha Dane.â Crap, it was him. My brother spins around, his hand stretching out to hit me. I close my eyes, bracing myself, ready to feel the burn. âI wouldnât do that if I were you.â Alpha Daneâs voice rumbles through the room. Peeking through slits, I see Alpha Dane has risen to his feet, his hand coiled around my brother's wrist. "Let go off me! It's none of your business" Trey's face turns red. Ignoring Trey's yelling, Alpha Dane says with his eyes set on me, "It is my business if she is to be my bride." I look up, my eyes filled with the same incredulity in Trey's. "Why? You want a murderer to be your bride?" "Murdered whom?" "Our parents! That little brat killed our parents when she was 6!" Trey snarls. | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,723 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458991269_1355437229166483_9082912904734246603_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=XZKXS3-63aAQ7kNvgEEaPGI&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=Aa4FXanmh5xWNDFBTIZEpKc&oh=00_AYD8AIfX15AIq4dKFfNIoXvpoDdMVJxWivbswffsd5UhDQ&oe=67194736 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,519 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222517}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
VIEW_INSTAGRAM_PROFILE | http://instagram.com/dndbham | do not disturb - birmingham | https://www.facebook.com/61561320077783/ | 104 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Visit Instagram Profile | 0 | instagram.com | CAROUSEL | http://instagram.com/dndbham | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463664539_542626655083847_3887398439337218613_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=110&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=tm1LBAptPacQ7kNvgGhg_9B&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=AynvVSvWF8qXSGyVUTPgAjV&oh=00_AYC19_Ek_lMq3c1YOc6XCLJjD6bEVG5IASCu20uWcxORSA&oe=6719404D | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | do not disturb - birmingham | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,412 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 | đ´đ¤ŠFREE Admission Sat, Oct 19 from 12-4pm! | đ´đ¤ŠCelebrate at Fiesta de Palmas for đ3 days of pure joy, tradition, & culture in McAllen, TX! đď¸ FREE: Fri: 5p-10p | Sat-Sun before 4 PM â° Oct. 18-20 | McAllen Convention Center Tickets: https://bit.ly/4eFCK4I Fiesta de Palmas includes! đFireworks & Laser show 9p đH-E-B Helping Here Pumpkin Patch & petting zoo đĄ Carnival - All you can ride bracelets Sat-Sun12-6p đťBeer Around the World: Tickets: https://bit.ly/3NkCAUd đşAltar de Muertos 𤊠Silent Disco đď¸Artisan Mercado đ¤Live music stages đś đ˛ Full info: www.fiestadepalmas.com #FiestadePalmas #McAllen #iknowaplace | BOOK_TRAVEL | https://bit.ly/4eFCK4I | Fiesta de Palmas | https://www.facebook.com/fiestadepalmas/ | 12,821 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Book now | 0 | bit.ly | VIDEO | https://bit.ly/4eFCK4I | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/463797323_1278067636974413_7302245611845656623_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=MbLn2S2MiY4Q7kNvgFhZqBt&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=ANVI4AGDj6Wfu7Hi-ojWQLC&oh=00_AYALEZ8MIiAWHYMr53FjZLczVC4amL-Wf3Yt1vAccnK7xA&oe=6719258F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Fiesta de Palmas | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,349 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"is_bh_simple_request":false,"simple_request_ratio":1,"is_bh_selenium":false,"selenium_ratio":1,"ratio_threshold":0.8}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Enamorarme de ella despuĂŠs del divorcio | Seis aĂąos despuĂŠs, en su primer dĂa de trabajo tras regresar al paĂs, se cruza con su exmarido, que inesperadamente se convierte en su nuevo jefe. Mientras ella quiere huir, ĂŠl persiste en perseguirla, ella no querĂa que ĂŠl supiera que habĂa dado a luz a su hijo... ===== Stella Richard saliĂł del aeropuerto y parĂł un taxi. Le dio la direcciĂłn al conductor y entrĂł en el coche. Mientras el taxi avanzaba, ella contemplĂł a travĂŠs de la ventana aquella ciudad que le resultaba tan familiar... DespuĂŠs de seis aĂąos, habĂa regresado, pero la experiencia y los recuerdos que habĂa intentado olvidar todos estos aĂąos, empezaron a invadir su mente... Ella sacudiĂł la cabeza y ahuyentĂł esos pensamientos. En esta ocasiĂłn, no habĂa vuelto para pensar o develar esos viejos e inĂştiles recuerdos. HabĂa vuelto porque su jefe se lo habĂa pedido. Ăl le habĂa dicho que su compaĂąĂa estaba en un callejĂłn sin salida, y querĂa que ella volviera y resolviera la crisis. Al principio, ella no habĂa querido regresar, pero despuĂŠs de pensarlo un poco, decidiĂł hacerlo... Dado que hace seis aĂąos habĂa sido su jefe quien la habĂa ayudado en el momento mĂĄs difĂcil de su vida, y querĂa devolverle el favor... En cuanto a otras cosas, ya no le importaban... En la compaĂąĂa... Cuando llegĂł, vio que la mayorĂa de los empleados estaban hablando del mismo tema... Mientras pasaba a su lado, escuchĂł unas palabras... "OĂ que muchas empresas quieren comprar la nuestra..." "ÂĄEn serio! Significa que tendremos un nuevo jefe". "Solo espero que ese nuevo jefe sea guapo, como el director ejecutivo de un drama coreano..." "ÂĄOye! ÂżSabes quiĂŠn quiere comprarla?" Stella escuchaba todas sus conversaciones y no le importaban los chismes. SabĂa que a esa gente no le importaba quiĂŠn iba a comprar la empresa o cuĂĄl serĂa el precio... Lo Ăşnico que querĂan era chismorrear. Pero a ella... A ella le importaba... y estaba allĂ para conseguir un buen trato. "Por supuesto, serĂĄ la de Kingston, Grupos RK. En la ciudad, ÂżquiĂŠn es mĂĄs poderoso que RK y se atreverĂa a ir en contra de ellos...?" Stella quien estaba a punto de dar un paso se detuvo... Porque escuchĂł un nombre muy familiar y otro desconocido... "Los Kingston..." "Grupos RK..." De repente, los recuerdos que habĂa sellado en algĂşn rincĂłn de su mente empezaron a resurgir como una tormenta. Su cabeza se llenĂł de ellos como una inundaciĂłn. Se sintiĂł mareada. SintiĂł como si aĂşn estuviera encerrada en la MansiĂłn RK, rodeada de frĂas paredes... PensĂł que hacĂa tiempo que lo habĂa olvidado, pero al parecer solo era ilusiĂłn suya... **** Flashback... Hace seis aĂąos... En la MansiĂłn RK... Stella cruzĂł la puerta y se dirigiĂł a la sala de estar, su rostro no tenĂa buen aspecto. Ella se veĂa seria y aturdida... Su pequeĂąa cara lucĂa un poco pĂĄlida. "SeĂąora, ÂżquĂŠ le ha pasado? ÂżPor quĂŠ se ve tan pĂĄlida y dĂŠbil?" La que hablĂł fue Mia. Ella llevaba aĂąos trabajando para Kingston y siempre habĂa tratado a Stella como a una hija. Al verla en ese estado se preocupĂł. Su mirada se posĂł en los documentos que Stella sostenĂa y le preguntĂł... "ÂżEstĂĄ todo bien?" Stella la mirĂł, forzĂł una sonrisa y respondiĂł... "No es nada, estoy bien". "Pero tu cara no tiene buen aspecto. ÂżQuĂŠ tal si te preparo algo? Tu plato favorito, Aaloo Poori...", dijo Mia. "Mia... No te preocupes, estoy bien, es solo que..." Stella mirĂł los papeles y dijo: "No he menstruado en dos meses, y cuando fui al hospital..." No terminĂł la frase y la mirĂł. Sus ojos estaban llenos de ilusiĂłn y preocupaciĂłn... Ambas se miraron. Mia comprendiĂł lo que querĂa decir. Estaba embarazada. Pero ella tambiĂŠn conocĂa la relaciĂłn que existĂa entre el Sr. RK y Stella. No sabĂa quĂŠ decir... Al final, se limitĂł a felicitarla... Stella no dijo nada y volviĂł a mirar los papeles. No sabĂa quĂŠ decir... Llevaba tres aĂąos casada con Rene Kingston. Sin embargo, no se habĂan casado por amor... Su matrimonio era un simple contrato, cuyo tiempo lĂmite era de tres aĂąos. Porque la mujer que ĂŠl amaba era su hermana... Ăl habĂa estado a punto de casarse con su hermana Sophia, pero por alguna razĂłn, ella la reemplazĂł. AsĂ que desde el dĂa en que se casaron, ĂŠl le dijo que su matrimonio era solo un contrato y nada mĂĄs... Para ĂŠl era un mero convenio, pero para ella era un hermoso regalo de Dios. Porque solo ella sabĂa lo feliz que se habĂa sentido cuando supo que se iba a casar con el... La persona a la que habĂa amado durante toda su juventud. Todos esos aĂąos ella se esforzĂł al mĂĄximo en su matrimonio con la esperanza, de que tal vez asĂ, este funcionarĂa. Tal vez ĂŠl no se divorciarĂa de ella. Tal vez, ĂŠl tambiĂŠn querrĂa quedarse con ella... Tal vez, ĂŠl darĂa una oportunidad a su relaciĂłn porque bien del bebĂŠ... Ella seguĂa pensando en eso cuando, de repente, una voz se oyĂł desde la puerta y rompiĂł todas sus esperanzas e ilusiones... "No quiero a ese niĂąo..." Aquella voz era frĂa y dura. Stella y Mia miraron en la direcciĂłn de la voz. RK estaba en la puerta y la miraba. Su rostro era frĂo e inexpresivo. No podĂan saber lo que estaba pensando. TenĂa una cara muy atractiva y ojos azules. Eran como las profundidades del ocĂŠano. Silos mirabas... ...Te podrĂas ahogar en ellos. CapĂtulo 2 No soy la mujer correcta RK entrĂł y se colocĂł delante de Stella. Ăl parecĂa un rey que ocupaba la posiciĂłn mĂĄs alta del mundo y miraba a la gente como si no fueran insignificantes. Era alto y tenĂa un aura poderosa. Ella estaba sentada en el sofĂĄ, y estaba rodeada por esta. Ella se quedĂł allĂ mirĂĄndolo, porque sus palabras la habĂan dejado estupefacta. Nunca pensĂł que tuviera la sangre tan frĂa como para no pensĂĄrselo dos veces antes de decir algo asĂ. No habĂa vacilado cuando dijo que no querĂa a ese niĂąo. Ella lo observĂł, intentĂł calmarse y contener las lĂĄgrimas. No querĂa parecer dĂŠbil ante aquel frĂo hombre. Los dos se miraron sin decir nada... Al cabo de un rato, ĂŠl se acercĂł y se sentĂł frente a ella. Cuando lo hizo, su ayudante Alex Triston puso unos papeles sobre la mesa. Encima de ellos habĂa dos palabras escritas: "Contrato expirado". Alex la mirĂł y dijo: "Srta. Richard, su contrato de tres aĂąos con el Sr. RK ha concluido. Ahora solo falta que ambos firmen y lo envĂen". EscuchĂł como ĂŠl habĂa cambiado su forma de dirigirse a ella, incluso antes de que firmara, por lo que una sonrisa burlona se dibujĂł en su rostro. Ella estaba segura de que, ĂŠl no se atreverĂa a tomarla tan a la ligera, si no fuera porque alguien se lo habĂa ordenado. Por supuesto, ese alguien no era otro que su marido. RK tomĂł la pluma y firmĂł sin detenerse ni pensarlo. Cuando terminĂł, la mirĂł y le dijo: "Puedes quedarte aquĂ por una semana y buscar una casa..." Ella lo mirĂł a los ojos, los cuales estaban tranquilos como un lago... No habĂa arrepentimiento, tristeza, vacilaciĂłn... Nada. Era como si ĂŠl no sintiera nada con respecto a su relaciĂłn, la cual repentinamente habĂa sufrido un gran cambio... Sin embargo, cuando ese pensamiento se le vino a la mente, se reprendiĂł a sĂ misma... "Stella, Âżeres una tonta?" "ÂżCĂłmo puedes esperar arrepentimiento y tristeza de un hombre con un corazĂłn de piedra?" No obstante, no podĂa controlar sus emociones... Porque ella lo habĂa amado durante muchos aĂąos. No dijo nada y se limitĂł a observar a esa persona con la que habĂa vivido durante tres aĂąos. HabĂa visto su cara todos los dĂas, y aĂşn ahora, cuando lo contemplaba, le seguĂa pareciendo muy guapo... Pero... Era el hombre que le habĂa roto el corazĂłn en mil pedazos. No querĂa mostrarse dĂŠbil delante de ĂŠl, asĂ que hizo todo lo posible por no llorar. La mano que sostenĂa la pluma le temblaba... MirĂł los papeles, vio su hermosa y fuerte caligrafĂa y firmĂł. Pero al igual que su corazĂłn, su letra tambiĂŠn parecĂa maltrecha. Ella estaba rota por dentro, pero su rostro no lo demostraba. DespuĂŠs de firmar, respirĂł hondo y dijo: "Estoy muy agradecida con el Sr. Kingston por dejar que me quede una semana, pero despuĂŠs de que expire nuestro contrato no creo que deba permanecer aquĂ. Me irĂŠ inmediatamente..." Cuando terminĂł de hablar, mirĂł a Mia y le preguntĂł: "Mia Âżpuedes ayudarme a empacar mis cosas?" Ella la mirĂł, se dio cuenta de lo mucho que intentaba no llorar y le doliĂł el corazĂłn. No querĂa hacerlo, pero tenĂa que ser asĂ. Stella subiĂł para recoger sus cosas y RK la observĂł, pero nadie podĂa leer sus emociones. Ella mirĂł la habitaciĂłn donde habĂa estado viviendo durante tres aĂąos y sus ojos se empaĂąaron... No pudo contener las lĂĄgrimas. SabĂa que su matrimonio terminarĂa algĂşn dĂa, pero no sabĂa por quĂŠ sentĂa tanto dolor en su corazĂłn... No tenĂa muchas cosas que guardar. Se limitĂł a empacar y no tocĂł nada de lo que ĂŠl le habĂa comprado. Ni siquiera una prenda... Mia la mirĂł y no supo quĂŠ decir... Stella se secĂł las lĂĄgrimas y le dijo: "Mia no te preocupes. Estoy bien. Es solo que no soy la mujer correcta para ĂŠl". DespuĂŠs de decir eso, tomĂł su bolso y bajĂł las escaleras. **** En la planta inferior... RK seguĂa sentado en el sofĂĄ y la miraba, pero ella no deseaba verlo y estaba dispuesta a marcharse... "ÂżA dĂłnde vas?" De repente sonĂł la frĂa voz de aquel hombre. Ella se detuvo y lo mirĂł... Desde el principio, ella no estaba en buenos tĂŠrminos con su familia y despuĂŠs de su matrimonio, era mucho mĂĄs difĂcil tratar con ellos... En cuanto a ĂŠl, ya se habĂan divorciado, asĂ que no se sentĂa obligada a decirle a dĂłnde iba... "No creo que mi paradero tenga algo que ver con el Sr. Kingston. Creo que ahora que ya estamos divorciados y no tenemos nada que ver el uno con el otro, usted debe concentrarse en su futura esposa, y no en su exmujer..." Ella no entendĂa el comportamiento hipĂłcrita de ese hombre. Cuando estaban juntos y ella estaba en casa ardiendo en fiebre ni siquiera habĂa mostrado preocupaciĂłn por ella... En ese momento, ĂŠl estaba ocupado con sus negocios y ganando dinero... No le habĂa importado que su esposa se estuviera muriendo. De repente, ella no supo por quĂŠ, o si era una ilusiĂłn, pero sintiĂł que despuĂŠs de decir eso sobre una futura esposa, la temperatura a su alrededor bajĂł mucho... SintiĂł frĂo en todo su cuerpo y decidiĂł irse... "Detente... " CapĂtulo 3 No quiero a ese niĂąo Stella lo escuchĂł y se detuvo. Albergaba un poco de esperanza en su corazĂłn. Los ojos del hombre eran oscuros y frĂos. Estos se llenaron de algunos pensamientos misteriosos y una capa de niebla los envolviĂł. De repente, dijo: "No quiero a ese niĂąo. No olvides abortar". RK mirĂł a la mujer que tenĂa delante y se quedĂł pensando... SentĂa que ella era pura y hermosa, por eso no querĂa que lidiara con su carga. La mano de Stella, la cual cargaba su equipaje, temblĂł y la pequeĂąa esperanza que tenĂa se desvaneciĂł... Ăl le habĂa roto el corazĂłn tantas veces, no sabĂa por quĂŠ, pero todavĂa le dolĂa con la misma intensidad cada vez que sucedĂa... "Booooom". Sus palabras explotaron en su cabeza como una bomba. ApretĂł la bolsa que sostenĂa. Y sintiĂł como si alguien la hubiera apuĂąalado... De repente se rio de sĂ misma... Se sintiĂł como una tonta. ÂżCĂłmo podĂa esperar algo de un hombre tan frĂo con su hijo...? QuerĂa gritarle, pero al final no dijo nada... Ăl le habĂa dicho una vez que le gustaban los niĂąos y por, pero... Era como si le gustaran, pero no para tenerlos con ELLA... Le dolĂa mucho el corazĂłn, pero no querĂa que ĂŠl viera sus lĂĄgrimas. Se dio la vuelta y quedĂł de espaldas a ĂŠl. RespirĂł hondo y dijo: "Sr. Kingston no lo piense demasiado. Yo tampoco lo quiero. Ya habĂa decidido abortarlo". Estaba a punto de irse, pero se parĂł y dijo: "Una cosa mĂĄs, espero que no nos volvamos a ver en esta vida..." DespuĂŠs de decir eso, se fue. Al principio, ella no querĂa dejar ese lugar, pero ahora... SentĂa que se estaba sofocando... SujetĂł su bolso con fuerza y se marchĂł sin mirar atrĂĄs. RK mirĂł la espalda de la mujer, la cual luchaba por mantenerse derecha y no tambalearse... Sus ojos se oscurecieron y se llenaron de algunas emociones ilegibles... Hasta que la figura de la mujer desapareciĂł de su vista, su espalda tensa se relajĂł y dijo... "Conduce..." Cuando el hombre dio la orden, el conductor no esperĂł ni un segundo y pisĂł el acelerador. Entonces, el coche negro se alejĂł y desapareciĂł... *Fin del flashback* "Lo siento, no te vi..." De repente un hombre chocĂł con ella, quien estaba de pie en el pasillo. Los documentos se le cayeron al suelo. Sin embargo, debido a esto ella tambiĂŠn volviĂł a la realidad... "No, lo siento", le dijo, lo ayudĂł a recogerlos y entrĂł en el ascensor. Cuando la puerta se abriĂł, Jack Paul, quien estaba afuera, la saludĂł... La miro con una sonrisa y le dijo: "Stella llegaste. ÂżCĂłmo estĂĄs? Eres nueva aquĂ, si necesitas algo no dudes en decĂrmelo..." Ella lo mirĂł y asintiĂł. "Estoy bien, gracias". Mientras hablaban, caminaron hasta su despacho y se sentaron. Ăl la mirĂł y le dijo: "Estoy muy contento de que hayas aceptado mi oferta y hayas vuelto". Le dio una carpeta roja y le dijo: "Estoy seguro de que has oĂdo que alguien quiere comprar nuestra empresa. En esta carpeta estĂĄn los informes que hice, ĂŠchales un vistazo". Ella la tomĂł y asintiĂł. Ăl continuĂł: "Hay muchas empresas que quieren comprar la nuestra, pero entre todas ellas estĂĄn los Grupos RK. No obstante, el precio que nos ofrecieron fue demasiado bajo..." Hizo una pausa y dijo: "Esta vez te pedĂ que volvieras para que pudieras darle la vuelta a la situaciĂłn..." "Grupos RK... RenĂŠ Kingston..." Sus manos temblaron mientras sostenĂa los documentos. Los recuerdos que estaban en lo mĂĄs profundo de su hermĂŠtico corazĂłn invadieron su mente... su mente... Ella se tranquilizĂł y dijo: "HarĂŠ lo que pueda". "EstĂĄ bien". Jack se rio y dijo: "Ahora que has aceptado esta tarea ya no estoy preocupado". CapĂtulo 4 ÂżPor quĂŠ vale setenta millones? Al dĂa siguiente, en una cafeterĂa... Stella ya habĂa organizado todo y le pidiĂł al director de negociaciĂłn de los Grupos RK que se reunieran en una cafeterĂa. Mientras lo esperaba, un hombre vestido con un traje negro y gafas de montura dorada se acercĂł. Pero cuando⌠llegĂł y la vio, se sorprendiĂł. Ella tambiĂŠn se quedĂł estupefacta al mirar a la persona que tenĂa delante. Porque, quien estaba frente a ella era el asistente de RK, Alex Triston. Por un momento, ambos se quedaron callados. Fue ella quien tomĂł la iniciativa y dijo: "CuĂĄnto tiempo sin vernos". Ăl escuchĂł sus palabras y recobrĂł la compostura. AsintiĂł y se sentĂł. Ella no perdiĂł el tiempo y fue directo al grano. "Sr. Triston aquĂ estĂĄn los documentos, si le parece bien, por favor, fĂrmelos". Mientras lo decĂa, los colocĂł delante de ĂŠl. Ăl vio el impactante precio de setenta millones y se escandalizĂł. "Srta. Richard, los Grupos RK solo pueden ofrecer cuarenta millones. El precio propuesto por su empresa es extremadamente alto". Desde el principio, ella no querĂa firmar ese contrato. Nunca permitirĂĄ que ese hombre se convierta en su jefe. Ella sentĂa que estaba perdiendo su tiempo, deberĂa buscar alguna otra compaĂąĂa. "EstĂĄ bien, pero no podemos firmar". Dijo recogiendo sus cosas y decidida a irse. Alex vio que estaba a punto de marcharse y que no estaba interesada en el trato por lo que se asustĂł. Se le acercĂł y la detuvo. "Srta. por favor espere, dĂŠjeme llamar y preguntar sobre el precio una vez mĂĄs". Ella se detuvo y asintiĂł. "Por supuesto". Ăl caminĂł hacia un lado y llamĂł. **** En los Grupos RK, oficina del director general... RK estaba sentado en la cabecera y escuchaba el informe del departamento de marketing cuando su telĂŠfono sonĂł. Lo mirĂł y colgĂł. No le gustaba que lo molestaran en el trabajo. Sin embargo, al cabo de unos segundos, volviĂł a sonar. Los que estaban en la oficina vieron su frĂa expresiĂłn y temblaron. TomĂł el telĂŠfono y preguntĂł: "ÂżQuĂŠ sucede?" Su voz era frĂa. Alex le informĂł de toda la situaciĂłn. "Diles, que eso no va a suceder setenta millones es demasiado. No lo valen". Cuando terminĂł de hablar, se dispuso a colgar... Pero su asistente le dijo algo que hizo que se detuviera a pensar por un momento. Sus dedos golpearon la mesa y despuĂŠs de un minuto respondiĂł: "De acuerdo, aceptemos setenta millones". DespuĂŠs hizo una pausa y aĂąadiĂł: "Dile que irĂŠ a la empresa y que quiero que me explique personalmente por quĂŠ vale setenta millones". DespuĂŠs colgĂł. En sus profundos ojos azules habĂa emociones desconocidas. La gente del departamento de marketing escuchĂł sus palabras y se sorprendieron. "El director general va a firmar personalmente el contrato". "ÂżEra esa negociaciĂłn digna de su visita?". AdemĂĄs, sabĂan que Raksham no necesitaba involucrarse personalmente en ese trato. Todos ellos cuestionaban la situaciĂłn. **** Alex no estaba hablando demasiado lejos asĂ que ella pudo oĂr una parte de su conversaciĂłn. Ella lo escuchĂł decir su nombre directamente, a la persona al otro lado del telĂŠfono. Tres minutos despuĂŠs... "ÂĄSrta. Richard, espere! El Sr. Kingston dijo que no tiene ningĂşn problema con el precio. El acuerdo se fijarĂĄ segĂşn los tĂŠrminos de su empresa, firmemos rĂĄpidamente para que nadie se eche para atrĂĄs". Cuando terminĂł de hablar, sacĂł los documentos, firmĂł y le dio el bolĂgrafo. Ella se sorprendiĂł un poco al ver su actitud arrogante, era como si ya hubiera comprado la empresa. MirĂł el bolĂgrafo aturdida. No se imaginaba que el acuerdo entre los dos fuera a salir tan bien y sin esfuerzo. Ella sintiĂł que habĂa dejado clara su postura al no querer bajar el precio y que se habĂa mantenido bastante firme en su decisiĂłn. Pero quien iba a decirlo. RK se habĂa mostrado mucho mĂĄs firme que ella respecto a la adquisiciĂłn de la compaĂąĂa. Incluso aceptĂł firmar el contrato pagando el precio que ella habĂa establecido. "A ĂŠl no le gustaba cambiar de decisiĂłn pasara lo que pasara. Entonces, Âżpor quĂŠ lo habĂa hecho?" "ÂżEra porque, despuĂŠs de vivir con el amor de su vida, ĂŠl habĂa cambiado?" PensĂł... Pero sin importar quĂŠ... Ahora, ÂżquĂŠ podĂa hacer? TomĂł el bolĂgrafo y firmĂł. A ella no le importaba nada que tuviera que ver con ĂŠl...de todos modos, ella no iba a quedarse allĂ. de todos modos, ella no iba a quedarse allĂ. Normalmente, ella no querrĂa que ĂŠl se convirtiera en su jefe, pero... ÂżQuĂŠ podĂa hacer? DebĂa terminar ese trabajo y marcharse rĂĄpidamente. Alex guardĂł los documentos, le dio la mano y dijo: "Srta. Richard a partir de ahora somos compaĂąeros de trabajo en la misma empresa. En el futuro, ÂĄpor favor, cuide de nosotros!" Ella solo le dedicĂł una sonrisa forzada. Solo su corazĂłn y Dios sabĂan cuĂĄnto deseaba que aquel hombre fuera su jefe. Ăl la mirĂł y aĂąadiĂł: "Por favor, vuelva rĂĄpido a su empresa, el Sr. Kingston estarĂĄ allĂ dentro de un rato. Ha dicho que quiere que usted... le explique personalmente por quĂŠ vale setenta millones". Tampoco sabĂa por quĂŠ su jefe querĂa que ella se lo dijera personalmente, teniendo en cuenta lo que habĂa pasado entre ellos. Pero como asistente, solo podĂa hacer lo que ĂŠl dijera. ***** De regreso en la empresa... Ella estaba sentada dentro de su coche, pero su mente estaba llena de pensamientos de cĂłmo en el futuro RK se convertirĂĄ en su jefe. "ÂĄAhhh! Stella, eres la mejor. Acabas de cerrar el contrato en cuanto apareciste". El que hablaba era la asistente del director de la empresa. "No sabes, antes de que vinieras, el Sr. Paul habĂa enviado a mucha gente a negociar con el Sr. Kingston, pero ĂŠl solo bajaba el precio". La abrazĂł y le dijo alegremente: "Stella eres nuestra estrella de la suerte". Ella bajĂł la cabeza y no dijo nada, porque eso no era lo que ella querĂa. Lily continuĂł: "Acabas de llegar, asĂ que no debes conocer muy bien la ciudad". Mientras decĂa eso se acercĂł a su oĂdo y dijo: "DĂŠjame decirte que el Sr. Kingston es el hombre mĂĄs guapo de ciudad X. No solo es apuesto, sino tambiĂŠn rico y competente. Es el hombre de los sueĂąos de muchas mujeres del mundo..." Al oĂr sus palabras, Stella se quedĂł sin palabras. "He oĂdo que antes tenĂa una prometida... Pero la dejĂł hace seis aĂąos", comentĂł Lily. "ÂżNo se casĂł con la hermana de esa chica?" Ella no podĂa creer que aĂşn no se hubieran casado. ÂżNo se habĂa divorciado de ella porque querĂa casarse con su hermana? PensĂł que ya deberĂan haberlo hecho, tenido hijos y vivido felices el uno con el otro. "Stella, aquĂ estĂĄs..." Cuando Jack se enterĂł de que ella habĂa llegado a un acuerdo con los Grupos RK, acudiĂł personalmente a recibirla con una gran sonrisa en la cara. "Stella, no me has decepcionado... RĂĄpido ve a la sala de reuniones y siĂŠntate un rato. El Sr. Kingston llegarĂĄ pronto y vendrĂĄs conmigo para darle la bienvenida..." "No quiero ir..." Inconscientemente, esas palabras salieron de la boca de Stella. Cuando se dio cuenta de lo que habĂa dicho, hizo una pausa y dijo: "Sr. Paul, lamento mi comportamiento, pero no quiero ir..." Su voz era firme. "Como usted sabe yo acabo de regresar a causa de este contrato. Ahora que todo estĂĄ en marcha, quiero volver a Francia y trabajar en la oficina central de la empresa como antes". DespuĂŠs de su divorcio y de lo ocurrido hace seis aĂąos... no querĂa volver a ver a ese hombre. Sus palabras... "No quiero a ese niĂąo..." TodavĂa resonaban en su mente. DespuĂŠs de regresar... no querĂa verlo. Ese hombre de sangre frĂa y corazĂłn de piedra ya le habĂa roto el corazĂłn mil veces, y no querĂa volver a experimentar ese dolor. Tal vez en el fondo no era capaz de olvidarlo por completo o tal vez habĂa algo mĂĄs... Sin embargo, estaba segura de una cosa: no querĂa encontrarse con ĂŠl. Si aĂşn quedaba un poco de amor en su interior, querĂa eliminarlo lo antes posible y mantenerse alejada de ĂŠl. Jack la mirĂł y le dijo: "No es que no quiera que vuelvas, pero ahora sabes que la compaĂąĂa fue comprada por el Sr. RK, y si te vas del paĂs o no... SerĂĄ decisiĂłn de ĂŠl..." ÂżQuĂŠ? Hace seis aĂąos, su matrimonio habĂa estado en sus manos, y ahora su trabajo... Ella se resistĂa a dejar que ĂŠl decidiera su futuro... Se sentĂa como si hubiera caĂdo en una trampa. Ella querĂa permanecer lo mĂĄs lejos posible de ĂŠl. Jack la mirĂł a la cara y supo que no se encontraba de buen humor por lo que le dijo: "De acuerdo, entonces vete y descansa un poco. DespuĂŠs de que el Sr. RK se haga cargo de la empresa, puedes solicitar tu permiso de nuevo..." "SolicĂtaselo..." Ahora, ĂŠl decidirĂa si se iba o no. Cuando pensĂł en aquello, sintiĂł como si su cabeza estuviera a punto de explotar... Ahora mismo, ella no querĂa nada... Solo deseaba irse de ese lugar. SabĂa que ĂŠl llegarĂa en cualquier momento y que existĂa la posibilidad de encontrarse con ĂŠl. AsĂ que, al menos por ahora, lo mejor para ella era marcharse lo mĂĄs rĂĄpido posible, para poder evitarlo... No dijo nada y se dispuso a retirarse. Pero justo cuando dio el primer paso, oyĂł a alguien... "Sr. Rk..." ...... ==== Stella Richard se casĂł con Rene Kingston en lugar de su hermana Sophia por algunas razones. Pero desde el principio, ella sabe que su matrimonio era solo un contrato por tiempo lĂmite y una vez que se cumpliĂł el tiempo, ella tenĂa que irse. Para RK, este matrimonio fue solo una carga, pero para ella fue un regalo de Dios. Porque RK era el hombre al que habĂa amado toda su juventud... Entonces, mientras tanto de su matrimonio, Stella hizo todo lo posible para que este matrimonio funcionara. Pero el dĂa que descubriĂł que estaba embarazada, su esposo le dio el papel de divorcio y le dijo... "No quiero a este niĂąo. No olvides abortar". Estas palabras salen de su boca, como una bomba para Stella, y cambiaron su vida... Ella firmĂł su nombre en el papel de divorcio y saliĂł de la casa, porque ella no quiere estar con un hombre tan frĂo. Seis aĂąos despuĂŠs, RK comprĂł la empresa en la que trabajaba Stella. Pero Stella hizo todo lo posible por no tener nada que ver con ĂŠl, porque ella tenĂa un hijo y no querĂa que ĂŠl se enterara de ĂŠl... Pero un dĂa, cuando Stella recogiĂł a su hijo de la escuela, ĂŠl la vio... RK su mirada se posĂł en el niĂąo a su lado, su rostro se veĂa igual que cuando era joven... ÂżQuĂŠ sucederĂĄ en adelante? Los capĂtulos disponibles son limitados aquĂ, haga click el botĂłn abajo para instalar APP y disfrutar leyendo mĂĄs contenidos maravillosos. (Al abrir el APP, directo accederĂĄ a este libro) &5& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14128375-fb_contact-spc | Beloved Books | https://www.facebook.com/61565799023858/ | 525 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.manobook.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14128375-fb_contact-spcp23_2-240914-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=060236&accid=911653190288373&rawadid=120212758919810521 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461303429_1204821480786162_751964766604802428_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=mF_1TjLetFcQ7kNvgHsMF8G&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=AHIeokV6u4oFAzSsgaAWimv&oh=00_AYBW33LZ9dZhw-Y7C2-QIECYVlPqcLXKSW9LvAp1ero3kQ&oe=67191C92 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Beloved Books | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,348 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"is_bh_simple_request":false,"simple_request_ratio":1,"is_bh_selenium":false,"selenium_ratio":1,"ratio_threshold":0.8}' |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Enamorarme de ella despuĂŠs del divorcio | Seis aĂąos despuĂŠs, en su primer dĂa de trabajo tras regresar al paĂs, se cruza con su exmarido, que inesperadamente se convierte en su nuevo jefe. Mientras ella quiere huir, ĂŠl persiste en perseguirla, ella no querĂa que ĂŠl supiera que habĂa dado a luz a su hijo... ===== Stella Richard saliĂł del aeropuerto y parĂł un taxi. Le dio la direcciĂłn al conductor y entrĂł en el coche. Mientras el taxi avanzaba, ella contemplĂł a travĂŠs de la ventana aquella ciudad que le resultaba tan familiar... DespuĂŠs de seis aĂąos, habĂa regresado, pero la experiencia y los recuerdos que habĂa intentado olvidar todos estos aĂąos, empezaron a invadir su mente... Ella sacudiĂł la cabeza y ahuyentĂł esos pensamientos. En esta ocasiĂłn, no habĂa vuelto para pensar o develar esos viejos e inĂştiles recuerdos. HabĂa vuelto porque su jefe se lo habĂa pedido. Ăl le habĂa dicho que su compaĂąĂa estaba en un callejĂłn sin salida, y querĂa que ella volviera y resolviera la crisis. Al principio, ella no habĂa querido regresar, pero despuĂŠs de pensarlo un poco, decidiĂł hacerlo... Dado que hace seis aĂąos habĂa sido su jefe quien la habĂa ayudado en el momento mĂĄs difĂcil de su vida, y querĂa devolverle el favor... En cuanto a otras cosas, ya no le importaban... En la compaĂąĂa... Cuando llegĂł, vio que la mayorĂa de los empleados estaban hablando del mismo tema... Mientras pasaba a su lado, escuchĂł unas palabras... "OĂ que muchas empresas quieren comprar la nuestra..." "ÂĄEn serio! Significa que tendremos un nuevo jefe". "Solo espero que ese nuevo jefe sea guapo, como el director ejecutivo de un drama coreano..." "ÂĄOye! ÂżSabes quiĂŠn quiere comprarla?" Stella escuchaba todas sus conversaciones y no le importaban los chismes. SabĂa que a esa gente no le importaba quiĂŠn iba a comprar la empresa o cuĂĄl serĂa el precio... Lo Ăşnico que querĂan era chismorrear. Pero a ella... A ella le importaba... y estaba allĂ para conseguir un buen trato. "Por supuesto, serĂĄ la de Kingston, Grupos RK. En la ciudad, ÂżquiĂŠn es mĂĄs poderoso que RK y se atreverĂa a ir en contra de ellos...?" Stella quien estaba a punto de dar un paso se detuvo... Porque escuchĂł un nombre muy familiar y otro desconocido... "Los Kingston..." "Grupos RK..." De repente, los recuerdos que habĂa sellado en algĂşn rincĂłn de su mente empezaron a resurgir como una tormenta. Su cabeza se llenĂł de ellos como una inundaciĂłn. Se sintiĂł mareada. SintiĂł como si aĂşn estuviera encerrada en la MansiĂłn RK, rodeada de frĂas paredes... PensĂł que hacĂa tiempo que lo habĂa olvidado, pero al parecer solo era ilusiĂłn suya... **** Flashback... Hace seis aĂąos... En la MansiĂłn RK... Stella cruzĂł la puerta y se dirigiĂł a la sala de estar, su rostro no tenĂa buen aspecto. Ella se veĂa seria y aturdida... Su pequeĂąa cara lucĂa un poco pĂĄlida. "SeĂąora, ÂżquĂŠ le ha pasado? ÂżPor quĂŠ se ve tan pĂĄlida y dĂŠbil?" La que hablĂł fue Mia. Ella llevaba aĂąos trabajando para Kingston y siempre habĂa tratado a Stella como a una hija. Al verla en ese estado se preocupĂł. Su mirada se posĂł en los documentos que Stella sostenĂa y le preguntĂł... "ÂżEstĂĄ todo bien?" Stella la mirĂł, forzĂł una sonrisa y respondiĂł... "No es nada, estoy bien". "Pero tu cara no tiene buen aspecto. ÂżQuĂŠ tal si te preparo algo? Tu plato favorito, Aaloo Poori...", dijo Mia. "Mia... No te preocupes, estoy bien, es solo que..." Stella mirĂł los papeles y dijo: "No he menstruado en dos meses, y cuando fui al hospital..." No terminĂł la frase y la mirĂł. Sus ojos estaban llenos de ilusiĂłn y preocupaciĂłn... Ambas se miraron. Mia comprendiĂł lo que querĂa decir. Estaba embarazada. Pero ella tambiĂŠn conocĂa la relaciĂłn que existĂa entre el Sr. RK y Stella. No sabĂa quĂŠ decir... Al final, se limitĂł a felicitarla... Stella no dijo nada y volviĂł a mirar los papeles. No sabĂa quĂŠ decir... Llevaba tres aĂąos casada con Rene Kingston. Sin embargo, no se habĂan casado por amor... Su matrimonio era un simple contrato, cuyo tiempo lĂmite era de tres aĂąos. Porque la mujer que ĂŠl amaba era su hermana... Ăl habĂa estado a punto de casarse con su hermana Sophia, pero por alguna razĂłn, ella la reemplazĂł. AsĂ que desde el dĂa en que se casaron, ĂŠl le dijo que su matrimonio era solo un contrato y nada mĂĄs... Para ĂŠl era un mero convenio, pero para ella era un hermoso regalo de Dios. Porque solo ella sabĂa lo feliz que se habĂa sentido cuando supo que se iba a casar con el... La persona a la que habĂa amado durante toda su juventud. Todos esos aĂąos ella se esforzĂł al mĂĄximo en su matrimonio con la esperanza, de que tal vez asĂ, este funcionarĂa. Tal vez ĂŠl no se divorciarĂa de ella. Tal vez, ĂŠl tambiĂŠn querrĂa quedarse con ella... Tal vez, ĂŠl darĂa una oportunidad a su relaciĂłn porque bien del bebĂŠ... Ella seguĂa pensando en eso cuando, de repente, una voz se oyĂł desde la puerta y rompiĂł todas sus esperanzas e ilusiones... "No quiero a ese niĂąo..." Aquella voz era frĂa y dura. Stella y Mia miraron en la direcciĂłn de la voz. RK estaba en la puerta y la miraba. Su rostro era frĂo e inexpresivo. No podĂan saber lo que estaba pensando. TenĂa una cara muy atractiva y ojos azules. Eran como las profundidades del ocĂŠano. Silos mirabas... ...Te podrĂas ahogar en ellos. CapĂtulo 2 No soy la mujer correcta RK entrĂł y se colocĂł delante de Stella. Ăl parecĂa un rey que ocupaba la posiciĂłn mĂĄs alta del mundo y miraba a la gente como si no fueran insignificantes. Era alto y tenĂa un aura poderosa. Ella estaba sentada en el sofĂĄ, y estaba rodeada por esta. Ella se quedĂł allĂ mirĂĄndolo, porque sus palabras la habĂan dejado estupefacta. Nunca pensĂł que tuviera la sangre tan frĂa como para no pensĂĄrselo dos veces antes de decir algo asĂ. No habĂa vacilado cuando dijo que no querĂa a ese niĂąo. Ella lo observĂł, intentĂł calmarse y contener las lĂĄgrimas. No querĂa parecer dĂŠbil ante aquel frĂo hombre. Los dos se miraron sin decir nada... Al cabo de un rato, ĂŠl se acercĂł y se sentĂł frente a ella. Cuando lo hizo, su ayudante Alex Triston puso unos papeles sobre la mesa. Encima de ellos habĂa dos palabras escritas: "Contrato expirado". Alex la mirĂł y dijo: "Srta. Richard, su contrato de tres aĂąos con el Sr. RK ha concluido. Ahora solo falta que ambos firmen y lo envĂen". EscuchĂł como ĂŠl habĂa cambiado su forma de dirigirse a ella, incluso antes de que firmara, por lo que una sonrisa burlona se dibujĂł en su rostro. Ella estaba segura de que, ĂŠl no se atreverĂa a tomarla tan a la ligera, si no fuera porque alguien se lo habĂa ordenado. Por supuesto, ese alguien no era otro que su marido. RK tomĂł la pluma y firmĂł sin detenerse ni pensarlo. Cuando terminĂł, la mirĂł y le dijo: "Puedes quedarte aquĂ por una semana y buscar una casa..." Ella lo mirĂł a los ojos, los cuales estaban tranquilos como un lago... No habĂa arrepentimiento, tristeza, vacilaciĂłn... Nada. Era como si ĂŠl no sintiera nada con respecto a su relaciĂłn, la cual repentinamente habĂa sufrido un gran cambio... Sin embargo, cuando ese pensamiento se le vino a la mente, se reprendiĂł a sĂ misma... "Stella, Âżeres una tonta?" "ÂżCĂłmo puedes esperar arrepentimiento y tristeza de un hombre con un corazĂłn de piedra?" No obstante, no podĂa controlar sus emociones... Porque ella lo habĂa amado durante muchos aĂąos. No dijo nada y se limitĂł a observar a esa persona con la que habĂa vivido durante tres aĂąos. HabĂa visto su cara todos los dĂas, y aĂşn ahora, cuando lo contemplaba, le seguĂa pareciendo muy guapo... Pero... Era el hombre que le habĂa roto el corazĂłn en mil pedazos. No querĂa mostrarse dĂŠbil delante de ĂŠl, asĂ que hizo todo lo posible por no llorar. La mano que sostenĂa la pluma le temblaba... MirĂł los papeles, vio su hermosa y fuerte caligrafĂa y firmĂł. Pero al igual que su corazĂłn, su letra tambiĂŠn parecĂa maltrecha. Ella estaba rota por dentro, pero su rostro no lo demostraba. DespuĂŠs de firmar, respirĂł hondo y dijo: "Estoy muy agradecida con el Sr. Kingston por dejar que me quede una semana, pero despuĂŠs de que expire nuestro contrato no creo que deba permanecer aquĂ. Me irĂŠ inmediatamente..." Cuando terminĂł de hablar, mirĂł a Mia y le preguntĂł: "Mia Âżpuedes ayudarme a empacar mis cosas?" Ella la mirĂł, se dio cuenta de lo mucho que intentaba no llorar y le doliĂł el corazĂłn. No querĂa hacerlo, pero tenĂa que ser asĂ. Stella subiĂł para recoger sus cosas y RK la observĂł, pero nadie podĂa leer sus emociones. Ella mirĂł la habitaciĂłn donde habĂa estado viviendo durante tres aĂąos y sus ojos se empaĂąaron... No pudo contener las lĂĄgrimas. SabĂa que su matrimonio terminarĂa algĂşn dĂa, pero no sabĂa por quĂŠ sentĂa tanto dolor en su corazĂłn... No tenĂa muchas cosas que guardar. Se limitĂł a empacar y no tocĂł nada de lo que ĂŠl le habĂa comprado. Ni siquiera una prenda... Mia la mirĂł y no supo quĂŠ decir... Stella se secĂł las lĂĄgrimas y le dijo: "Mia no te preocupes. Estoy bien. Es solo que no soy la mujer correcta para ĂŠl". DespuĂŠs de decir eso, tomĂł su bolso y bajĂł las escaleras. **** En la planta inferior... RK seguĂa sentado en el sofĂĄ y la miraba, pero ella no deseaba verlo y estaba dispuesta a marcharse... "ÂżA dĂłnde vas?" De repente sonĂł la frĂa voz de aquel hombre. Ella se detuvo y lo mirĂł... Desde el principio, ella no estaba en buenos tĂŠrminos con su familia y despuĂŠs de su matrimonio, era mucho mĂĄs difĂcil tratar con ellos... En cuanto a ĂŠl, ya se habĂan divorciado, asĂ que no se sentĂa obligada a decirle a dĂłnde iba... "No creo que mi paradero tenga algo que ver con el Sr. Kingston. Creo que ahora que ya estamos divorciados y no tenemos nada que ver el uno con el otro, usted debe concentrarse en su futura esposa, y no en su exmujer..." Ella no entendĂa el comportamiento hipĂłcrita de ese hombre. Cuando estaban juntos y ella estaba en casa ardiendo en fiebre ni siquiera habĂa mostrado preocupaciĂłn por ella... En ese momento, ĂŠl estaba ocupado con sus negocios y ganando dinero... No le habĂa importado que su esposa se estuviera muriendo. De repente, ella no supo por quĂŠ, o si era una ilusiĂłn, pero sintiĂł que despuĂŠs de decir eso sobre una futura esposa, la temperatura a su alrededor bajĂł mucho... SintiĂł frĂo en todo su cuerpo y decidiĂł irse... "Detente... " CapĂtulo 3 No quiero a ese niĂąo Stella lo escuchĂł y se detuvo. Albergaba un poco de esperanza en su corazĂłn. Los ojos del hombre eran oscuros y frĂos. Estos se llenaron de algunos pensamientos misteriosos y una capa de niebla los envolviĂł. De repente, dijo: "No quiero a ese niĂąo. No olvides abortar". RK mirĂł a la mujer que tenĂa delante y se quedĂł pensando... SentĂa que ella era pura y hermosa, por eso no querĂa que lidiara con su carga. La mano de Stella, la cual cargaba su equipaje, temblĂł y la pequeĂąa esperanza que tenĂa se desvaneciĂł... Ăl le habĂa roto el corazĂłn tantas veces, no sabĂa por quĂŠ, pero todavĂa le dolĂa con la misma intensidad cada vez que sucedĂa... "Booooom". Sus palabras explotaron en su cabeza como una bomba. ApretĂł la bolsa que sostenĂa. Y sintiĂł como si alguien la hubiera apuĂąalado... De repente se rio de sĂ misma... Se sintiĂł como una tonta. ÂżCĂłmo podĂa esperar algo de un hombre tan frĂo con su hijo...? QuerĂa gritarle, pero al final no dijo nada... Ăl le habĂa dicho una vez que le gustaban los niĂąos y por, pero... Era como si le gustaran, pero no para tenerlos con ELLA... Le dolĂa mucho el corazĂłn, pero no querĂa que ĂŠl viera sus lĂĄgrimas. Se dio la vuelta y quedĂł de espaldas a ĂŠl. RespirĂł hondo y dijo: "Sr. Kingston no lo piense demasiado. Yo tampoco lo quiero. Ya habĂa decidido abortarlo". Estaba a punto de irse, pero se parĂł y dijo: "Una cosa mĂĄs, espero que no nos volvamos a ver en esta vida..." DespuĂŠs de decir eso, se fue. Al principio, ella no querĂa dejar ese lugar, pero ahora... SentĂa que se estaba sofocando... SujetĂł su bolso con fuerza y se marchĂł sin mirar atrĂĄs. RK mirĂł la espalda de la mujer, la cual luchaba por mantenerse derecha y no tambalearse... Sus ojos se oscurecieron y se llenaron de algunas emociones ilegibles... Hasta que la figura de la mujer desapareciĂł de su vista, su espalda tensa se relajĂł y dijo... "Conduce..." Cuando el hombre dio la orden, el conductor no esperĂł ni un segundo y pisĂł el acelerador. Entonces, el coche negro se alejĂł y desapareciĂł... *Fin del flashback* "Lo siento, no te vi..." De repente un hombre chocĂł con ella, quien estaba de pie en el pasillo. Los documentos se le cayeron al suelo. Sin embargo, debido a esto ella tambiĂŠn volviĂł a la realidad... "No, lo siento", le dijo, lo ayudĂł a recogerlos y entrĂł en el ascensor. Cuando la puerta se abriĂł, Jack Paul, quien estaba afuera, la saludĂł... La miro con una sonrisa y le dijo: "Stella llegaste. ÂżCĂłmo estĂĄs? Eres nueva aquĂ, si necesitas algo no dudes en decĂrmelo..." Ella lo mirĂł y asintiĂł. "Estoy bien, gracias". Mientras hablaban, caminaron hasta su despacho y se sentaron. Ăl la mirĂł y le dijo: "Estoy muy contento de que hayas aceptado mi oferta y hayas vuelto". Le dio una carpeta roja y le dijo: "Estoy seguro de que has oĂdo que alguien quiere comprar nuestra empresa. En esta carpeta estĂĄn los informes que hice, ĂŠchales un vistazo". Ella la tomĂł y asintiĂł. Ăl continuĂł: "Hay muchas empresas que quieren comprar la nuestra, pero entre todas ellas estĂĄn los Grupos RK. No obstante, el precio que nos ofrecieron fue demasiado bajo..." Hizo una pausa y dijo: "Esta vez te pedĂ que volvieras para que pudieras darle la vuelta a la situaciĂłn..." "Grupos RK... RenĂŠ Kingston..." Sus manos temblaron mientras sostenĂa los documentos. Los recuerdos que estaban en lo mĂĄs profundo de su hermĂŠtico corazĂłn invadieron su mente... su mente... Ella se tranquilizĂł y dijo: "HarĂŠ lo que pueda". "EstĂĄ bien". Jack se rio y dijo: "Ahora que has aceptado esta tarea ya no estoy preocupado". CapĂtulo 4 ÂżPor quĂŠ vale setenta millones? Al dĂa siguiente, en una cafeterĂa... Stella ya habĂa organizado todo y le pidiĂł al director de negociaciĂłn de los Grupos RK que se reunieran en una cafeterĂa. Mientras lo esperaba, un hombre vestido con un traje negro y gafas de montura dorada se acercĂł. Pero cuando⌠llegĂł y la vio, se sorprendiĂł. Ella tambiĂŠn se quedĂł estupefacta al mirar a la persona que tenĂa delante. Porque, quien estaba frente a ella era el asistente de RK, Alex Triston. Por un momento, ambos se quedaron callados. Fue ella quien tomĂł la iniciativa y dijo: "CuĂĄnto tiempo sin vernos". Ăl escuchĂł sus palabras y recobrĂł la compostura. AsintiĂł y se sentĂł. Ella no perdiĂł el tiempo y fue directo al grano. "Sr. Triston aquĂ estĂĄn los documentos, si le parece bien, por favor, fĂrmelos". Mientras lo decĂa, los colocĂł delante de ĂŠl. Ăl vio el impactante precio de setenta millones y se escandalizĂł. "Srta. Richard, los Grupos RK solo pueden ofrecer cuarenta millones. El precio propuesto por su empresa es extremadamente alto". Desde el principio, ella no querĂa firmar ese contrato. Nunca permitirĂĄ que ese hombre se convierta en su jefe. Ella sentĂa que estaba perdiendo su tiempo, deberĂa buscar alguna otra compaĂąĂa. "EstĂĄ bien, pero no podemos firmar". Dijo recogiendo sus cosas y decidida a irse. Alex vio que estaba a punto de marcharse y que no estaba interesada en el trato por lo que se asustĂł. Se le acercĂł y la detuvo. "Srta. por favor espere, dĂŠjeme llamar y preguntar sobre el precio una vez mĂĄs". Ella se detuvo y asintiĂł. "Por supuesto". Ăl caminĂł hacia un lado y llamĂł. **** En los Grupos RK, oficina del director general... RK estaba sentado en la cabecera y escuchaba el informe del departamento de marketing cuando su telĂŠfono sonĂł. Lo mirĂł y colgĂł. No le gustaba que lo molestaran en el trabajo. Sin embargo, al cabo de unos segundos, volviĂł a sonar. Los que estaban en la oficina vieron su frĂa expresiĂłn y temblaron. TomĂł el telĂŠfono y preguntĂł: "ÂżQuĂŠ sucede?" Su voz era frĂa. Alex le informĂł de toda la situaciĂłn. "Diles, que eso no va a suceder setenta millones es demasiado. No lo valen". Cuando terminĂł de hablar, se dispuso a colgar... Pero su asistente le dijo algo que hizo que se detuviera a pensar por un momento. Sus dedos golpearon la mesa y despuĂŠs de un minuto respondiĂł: "De acuerdo, aceptemos setenta millones". DespuĂŠs hizo una pausa y aĂąadiĂł: "Dile que irĂŠ a la empresa y que quiero que me explique personalmente por quĂŠ vale setenta millones". DespuĂŠs colgĂł. En sus profundos ojos azules habĂa emociones desconocidas. La gente del departamento de marketing escuchĂł sus palabras y se sorprendieron. "El director general va a firmar personalmente el contrato". "ÂżEra esa negociaciĂłn digna de su visita?". AdemĂĄs, sabĂan que Raksham no necesitaba involucrarse personalmente en ese trato. Todos ellos cuestionaban la situaciĂłn. **** Alex no estaba hablando demasiado lejos asĂ que ella pudo oĂr una parte de su conversaciĂłn. Ella lo escuchĂł decir su nombre directamente, a la persona al otro lado del telĂŠfono. Tres minutos despuĂŠs... "ÂĄSrta. Richard, espere! El Sr. Kingston dijo que no tiene ningĂşn problema con el precio. El acuerdo se fijarĂĄ segĂşn los tĂŠrminos de su empresa, firmemos rĂĄpidamente para que nadie se eche para atrĂĄs". Cuando terminĂł de hablar, sacĂł los documentos, firmĂł y le dio el bolĂgrafo. Ella se sorprendiĂł un poco al ver su actitud arrogante, era como si ya hubiera comprado la empresa. MirĂł el bolĂgrafo aturdida. No se imaginaba que el acuerdo entre los dos fuera a salir tan bien y sin esfuerzo. Ella sintiĂł que habĂa dejado clara su postura al no querer bajar el precio y que se habĂa mantenido bastante firme en su decisiĂłn. Pero quien iba a decirlo. RK se habĂa mostrado mucho mĂĄs firme que ella respecto a la adquisiciĂłn de la compaĂąĂa. Incluso aceptĂł firmar el contrato pagando el precio que ella habĂa establecido. "A ĂŠl no le gustaba cambiar de decisiĂłn pasara lo que pasara. Entonces, Âżpor quĂŠ lo habĂa hecho?" "ÂżEra porque, despuĂŠs de vivir con el amor de su vida, ĂŠl habĂa cambiado?" PensĂł... Pero sin importar quĂŠ... Ahora, ÂżquĂŠ podĂa hacer? TomĂł el bolĂgrafo y firmĂł. A ella no le importaba nada que tuviera que ver con ĂŠl...de todos modos, ella no iba a quedarse allĂ. de todos modos, ella no iba a quedarse allĂ. Normalmente, ella no querrĂa que ĂŠl se convirtiera en su jefe, pero... ÂżQuĂŠ podĂa hacer? DebĂa terminar ese trabajo y marcharse rĂĄpidamente. Alex guardĂł los documentos, le dio la mano y dijo: "Srta. Richard a partir de ahora somos compaĂąeros de trabajo en la misma empresa. En el futuro, ÂĄpor favor, cuide de nosotros!" Ella solo le dedicĂł una sonrisa forzada. Solo su corazĂłn y Dios sabĂan cuĂĄnto deseaba que aquel hombre fuera su jefe. Ăl la mirĂł y aĂąadiĂł: "Por favor, vuelva rĂĄpido a su empresa, el Sr. Kingston estarĂĄ allĂ dentro de un rato. Ha dicho que quiere que usted... le explique personalmente por quĂŠ vale setenta millones". Tampoco sabĂa por quĂŠ su jefe querĂa que ella se lo dijera personalmente, teniendo en cuenta lo que habĂa pasado entre ellos. Pero como asistente, solo podĂa hacer lo que ĂŠl dijera. ***** De regreso en la empresa... Ella estaba sentada dentro de su coche, pero su mente estaba llena de pensamientos de cĂłmo en el futuro RK se convertirĂĄ en su jefe. "ÂĄAhhh! Stella, eres la mejor. Acabas de cerrar el contrato en cuanto apareciste". El que hablaba era la asistente del director de la empresa. "No sabes, antes de que vinieras, el Sr. Paul habĂa enviado a mucha gente a negociar con el Sr. Kingston, pero ĂŠl solo bajaba el precio". La abrazĂł y le dijo alegremente: "Stella eres nuestra estrella de la suerte". Ella bajĂł la cabeza y no dijo nada, porque eso no era lo que ella querĂa. Lily continuĂł: "Acabas de llegar, asĂ que no debes conocer muy bien la ciudad". Mientras decĂa eso se acercĂł a su oĂdo y dijo: "DĂŠjame decirte que el Sr. Kingston es el hombre mĂĄs guapo de ciudad X. No solo es apuesto, sino tambiĂŠn rico y competente. Es el hombre de los sueĂąos de muchas mujeres del mundo..." Al oĂr sus palabras, Stella se quedĂł sin palabras. "He oĂdo que antes tenĂa una prometida... Pero la dejĂł hace seis aĂąos", comentĂł Lily. "ÂżNo se casĂł con la hermana de esa chica?" Ella no podĂa creer que aĂşn no se hubieran casado. ÂżNo se habĂa divorciado de ella porque querĂa casarse con su hermana? PensĂł que ya deberĂan haberlo hecho, tenido hijos y vivido felices el uno con el otro. "Stella, aquĂ estĂĄs..." Cuando Jack se enterĂł de que ella habĂa llegado a un acuerdo con los Grupos RK, acudiĂł personalmente a recibirla con una gran sonrisa en la cara. "Stella, no me has decepcionado... RĂĄpido ve a la sala de reuniones y siĂŠntate un rato. El Sr. Kingston llegarĂĄ pronto y vendrĂĄs conmigo para darle la bienvenida..." "No quiero ir..." Inconscientemente, esas palabras salieron de la boca de Stella. Cuando se dio cuenta de lo que habĂa dicho, hizo una pausa y dijo: "Sr. Paul, lamento mi comportamiento, pero no quiero ir..." Su voz era firme. "Como usted sabe yo acabo de regresar a causa de este contrato. Ahora que todo estĂĄ en marcha, quiero volver a Francia y trabajar en la oficina central de la empresa como antes". DespuĂŠs de su divorcio y de lo ocurrido hace seis aĂąos... no querĂa volver a ver a ese hombre. Sus palabras... "No quiero a ese niĂąo..." TodavĂa resonaban en su mente. DespuĂŠs de regresar... no querĂa verlo. Ese hombre de sangre frĂa y corazĂłn de piedra ya le habĂa roto el corazĂłn mil veces, y no querĂa volver a experimentar ese dolor. Tal vez en el fondo no era capaz de olvidarlo por completo o tal vez habĂa algo mĂĄs... Sin embargo, estaba segura de una cosa: no querĂa encontrarse con ĂŠl. Si aĂşn quedaba un poco de amor en su interior, querĂa eliminarlo lo antes posible y mantenerse alejada de ĂŠl. Jack la mirĂł y le dijo: "No es que no quiera que vuelvas, pero ahora sabes que la compaĂąĂa fue comprada por el Sr. RK, y si te vas del paĂs o no... SerĂĄ decisiĂłn de ĂŠl..." ÂżQuĂŠ? Hace seis aĂąos, su matrimonio habĂa estado en sus manos, y ahora su trabajo... Ella se resistĂa a dejar que ĂŠl decidiera su futuro... Se sentĂa como si hubiera caĂdo en una trampa. Ella querĂa permanecer lo mĂĄs lejos posible de ĂŠl. Jack la mirĂł a la cara y supo que no se encontraba de buen humor por lo que le dijo: "De acuerdo, entonces vete y descansa un poco. DespuĂŠs de que el Sr. RK se haga cargo de la empresa, puedes solicitar tu permiso de nuevo..." "SolicĂtaselo..." Ahora, ĂŠl decidirĂa si se iba o no. Cuando pensĂł en aquello, sintiĂł como si su cabeza estuviera a punto de explotar... Ahora mismo, ella no querĂa nada... Solo deseaba irse de ese lugar. SabĂa que ĂŠl llegarĂa en cualquier momento y que existĂa la posibilidad de encontrarse con ĂŠl. AsĂ que, al menos por ahora, lo mejor para ella era marcharse lo mĂĄs rĂĄpido posible, para poder evitarlo... No dijo nada y se dispuso a retirarse. Pero justo cuando dio el primer paso, oyĂł a alguien... "Sr. Rk..." ...... ==== Stella Richard se casĂł con Rene Kingston en lugar de su hermana Sophia por algunas razones. Pero desde el principio, ella sabe que su matrimonio era solo un contrato por tiempo lĂmite y una vez que se cumpliĂł el tiempo, ella tenĂa que irse. Para RK, este matrimonio fue solo una carga, pero para ella fue un regalo de Dios. Porque RK era el hombre al que habĂa amado toda su juventud... Entonces, mientras tanto de su matrimonio, Stella hizo todo lo posible para que este matrimonio funcionara. Pero el dĂa que descubriĂł que estaba embarazada, su esposo le dio el papel de divorcio y le dijo... "No quiero a este niĂąo. No olvides abortar". Estas palabras salen de su boca, como una bomba para Stella, y cambiaron su vida... Ella firmĂł su nombre en el papel de divorcio y saliĂł de la casa, porque ella no quiere estar con un hombre tan frĂo. Seis aĂąos despuĂŠs, RK comprĂł la empresa en la que trabajaba Stella. Pero Stella hizo todo lo posible por no tener nada que ver con ĂŠl, porque ella tenĂa un hijo y no querĂa que ĂŠl se enterara de ĂŠl... Pero un dĂa, cuando Stella recogiĂł a su hijo de la escuela, ĂŠl la vio... RK su mirada se posĂł en el niĂąo a su lado, su rostro se veĂa igual que cuando era joven... ÂżQuĂŠ sucederĂĄ en adelante? Los capĂtulos disponibles son limitados aquĂ, haga click el botĂłn abajo para instalar APP y disfrutar leyendo mĂĄs contenidos maravillosos. (Al abrir el APP, directo accederĂĄ a este libro) &5& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14128375-fb_contact-spc | Beloved Books | https://www.facebook.com/61565799023858/ | 525 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.manobook.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14128375-fb_contact-spcp23_2-240914-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=060236&accid=911653190288373&rawadid=120212758946920521 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461338069_1518498428792187_3591391216052523140_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=CL5ilfVuUBYQ7kNvgERgcFV&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=AHIeokV6u4oFAzSsgaAWimv&oh=00_AYC2EIQsjXHUHrsGDKkeHA8E5vu7q64iwPFirQixoQTTZA&oe=67193B34 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Beloved Books | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,010 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Expulsada de casa por sus padres adoptivos, de la noche a la maĂąana se convierte en multimillonaria... | Descubre con sorpresa que no es hija biolĂłgica de sus padres, siendo expulsada de casa por una conspiraciĂłn de su hija biolĂłgica y convirtiĂŠndola en objeto de burla. Creyendo ser de origen campesino, descubre inesperadamente que su verdadero padre es el hombre mĂĄs rico de la ciudad. ===== "Madisyn, te hemos criado durante aĂąos y nunca nos imaginamos que fueras capaz de tanta crueldad. Ya no podemos soportar tu presencia en esta casa. Debes irte de inmediato". DeclarĂł la imponente mujer frente a Madisyn Chapman, con una mirada llena de desdĂŠn y una expresiĂłn frĂa y amarga; su elegante y delicado atuendo contrastaba bruscamente con la dureza de sus palabras. "MamĂĄ, por favor, fue un accidente. PerdĂ el equilibrio y me caĂ por las escaleras. Ella no tuvo nada que ver", una joven que se parecĂa bastante a esta seĂąora estaba sentada en el sofĂĄ, con los ojos llorosos ella intervino. Hace apenas media hora, Jenna Chapman, la hija biolĂłgica de los Chapman, se habĂa caĂdo por las escaleras. En ese momento, Madisyn era la Ăşnica que se encontraba en el piso superior, asĂ que todos creĂan que la habĂa empujado... Ahora, las miradas que los Chapman le dirigĂan estaban llenas de veneno y disgusto, un marcado contraste con su actitud de hace una semana, cuando se mostraron renuentes a separarse de ella. Madisyn mirĂł al suelo, mientras en sus ojos brillaba un destello de ironĂa. Hubo una ĂŠpoca en la que ella fue hija Ăşnica de los Chapman y aunque nunca disfrutĂł del favoritismo parental, no le faltaba nada: sus necesidades bĂĄsicas siempre estaban cubiertas. Sin embargo, todo cambiĂł cuando Jeffry Chapman, a quien ella consideraba su padre, sufriĂł un grave accidente y necesitĂł una transfusiĂłn de s*ngre. Las pruebas y exĂĄmenes mĂŠdicos subsecuentes revelaron una impactante verdad: ella no era su hija biolĂłgica. Tras esa revelaciĂłn, el hombre utilizĂł su extensa red de contactos para encontrar a su verdadera hija, Jenna. Como la familia Chapman era una de las de mayor renombre en Gemond, la noticia no tardĂł en difundirse rĂĄpidamente. Para manejar la narrativa pĂşblica y preservar su reputaciĂłn, ellos declararon su compromiso inquebrantable con la chica a la que habĂan criado por aĂąos. Afirmaron que la seguirĂan tratando como su hija por un tiempo, antes de devolverla con su verdadera familia. No obstante, a puertas cerradas, sus planes eran muy diferentes. Solo estaban esperando a que la atenciĂłn pĂşblica se desviara para deshacerse discretamente de ella. Los Chapman culparon a Madisyn por todos los aĂąos de dificultades que habĂa pasado su verdadera hija. Por esa razĂłn, cuando esta llegĂł, sacaron a la usurpadora de su habitaciĂłn y la relegaron a vivir en un trastero. No conforme con eso, la obligaron a realizar tareas domĂŠsticas, dejando en claro que su estatus estaba muy por debajo que el de los sirvientes. Sin embargo, Jenna todavĂa querĂa sacarla de la casa, asĂ que puso en marcha varios planes en su contra. Y sus padres se hicieron de la vista gorda; de hecho, apenas podĂan disimular su desdĂŠn por la chica a la que por aĂąos consideraron su hija. Esos episodios acabaron con el afecto y las ilusiones que Madisyn tenĂa sobre su antigua familia; ademĂĄs, alimentaron su resoluciĂłn para confrontar las injusticias que se le habĂan impuesto. Cuando la tensiĂłn estaba a punto de alcanzar su punto mĂĄximo, dijo con seguridad: "Me irĂŠ, pero no antes de aclarar las cosas. Me niego a seguir llevando la carga de tus malas acciones, Jenna". La compostura de la aludida vacilĂł. Bajo la intensa y helada mirada de su acusadora, su cuerpo temblĂł visiblemente. 'ÂżQuĂŠ pasĂł con la chica que siempre era sumisa?', se preguntĂł, mientras un destello de maldad brillaba en sus pupilas. Ella era la heredera legĂtima de todos los bienes de la familia Chapman. En cambio, Madisyn no era mĂĄs que una usurpadora que estuvo viviendo a sus costillas y disfrutando de sus lujos y comodidades. En ese momento, tomĂł una decisiĂłn: tenĂa que expulsar a esa impostora de la familia. "Madisyn, no tengo idea de lo que estĂĄs hablando. Desde que reclamĂŠ mi legĂtimo lugar, y nuestros padres me han dado el amor que me corresponde, he sentido tu inconformidad. Y a pesar de tus acciones, me he mantenido tolerante, pero hacerme esto a mis piernas... ÂĄÂżCĂłmo pudiste?! Bailar es mi pasiĂłn, la expresiĂłn de mi alma. De haber sabido que querĂas tanto el puesto para la competencia nacional, me habrĂa retirado de la competencia", declarĂł Jenna, con la voz teĂąida de confusiĂłn. Su insinuaciĂłn era clara: la habĂa saboteado por celos. La mirada de Phyllis Chapman, madre de la lastimada, se endureciĂł al escuchar eso. Luego, hablĂł en un tono lleno de desdĂŠn: "Hija, tĂş tienes un talento notable que Madisyn nunca podrĂa igualar. Te ganaste tu lugar en la competencia nacional a pulso". Luego, se volviĂł a la otra y le dijo bruscamente: "ÂĄTĂş! ÂĄEmpaca tus cosas y vete de inmediato!". ParecĂa que la expresiĂłn usualmente sombrĂa de Madisyn solo alimentaba su desprecio. En contraste, Jenna, siempre dĂłcil y talentosa, brillaba intensamente a sus ojos. No tenĂa dudas de que era una verdadera Chapman. En medio del drama que se desarrollaba, Jeffry finalmente rompiĂł su silencio y hablĂł con un tono de marcada decepciĂłn. "Madisyn, habĂamos aceptado tenerte aquĂ hasta que el escrutinio pĂşblico disminuyera, pero ante el terrible resentimiento que le tienes a nuestra hija, no nos dejas otra opciĂłn. Te devolveremos con tu verdadera familia hoy mismo". En los ojos de Jenna brillĂł un destello de triunfo al escuchar que su padre hablaba de la inminente partida de la oportunista. En cambio, el rostro de la expulsada se mantuvo inescrutable mientras subĂa las escaleras para recoger sus pertenencias. "ÂżY si quiere llevarse todo?", preguntĂł despuĂŠs de un rato la hija de los Chapman, pues la prolongada estancia de la defenestrada en el piso de arriba la inquietĂł. DespuĂŠs de todo, cualquier cosa de valor que hubiera en esa casa le pertenecĂa a ella. No permitirĂa que una impostora se llevara parte de su riqueza. Eventualmente, Madisyn reapareciĂł. Bajaba las escaleras lentamente, con movimientos calmados y medidos. Cargaba una discreta bolsa negra. Durante su descenso, recorriĂł con su frĂa mirada la sala, lo que fue suficiente para que Jeffry se sintiera inquieto y desviara la mirada. "ÂżEso es todo lo que empacaste? ÂżQuĂŠ llevas ahĂ? MuĂŠstramelo", exigiĂł Phyllis con sospecha; habĂa fruncido el ceĂąo al ver el raquĂtico equipaje. En el acto, su esposo alzĂł la mano para detener su interrogatorio y dijo: "DĂŠjala en paz". Estaba seguro de que solo se estaba llevando la tarjeta bancaria que le dio, en la que Ăşnicamente habĂa cien mil dĂłlares. "Si tienes que revisarla, adelante", declarĂł la imperturbable Madisyn colocando, sin ĂĄpice de duda, su bolsa sobre la mesa. Phyllis, incapaz de ocultar su desconfianza, no perdiĂł la oportunidad de burlarse. "Tal vez te estĂĄs llevando algo valioso", murmurĂł, mientras abrĂa el bolso. Sin embargo, adentro solo encontrĂł un cuaderno, algunas semillas y un pequeĂąo fajo de billetes, nada de los objetos de valor que tanto le habĂan preocupado. Con el rostro rojo por la vergĂźenza debido a su falsa acusaciĂłn, se enderezĂł y aĂąadiĂł con brusquedad: "Le pedirĂŠ al chofer que te lleve a tu casa". Jeffry, sintiendo el peso de la situaciĂłn sobre sus hombros, metiĂł la mano en su bolsillo y sacĂł una tarjeta. "Madisyn, cuando regreses, escucha a tus padres. SĂ, son agricultores, pero... son buenas personas, gente sencilla. DeberĂas ayudarlos". Ella contemplĂł la tarjeta que le ofrecĂan con sus hermosos ojos. No perdiĂł la calma al responder suavemente: "Cada uno tiene que cumplir con su propio destino". Acto seguido, empujĂł la tarjeta hacia el hombre. Luego aĂąadiĂł: "Sin embargo, antes de irme, las cosas se tienen que aclarar. Jenna, ÂżcĂłmo fue que te caĂste por las escaleras? Esta es tu Ăşltima oportunidad para decir la verdad". A la aludida le hirviĂł la sangre, enfurecida por la serena compostura de esa impostora, pues parecĂa elevarla por encima de los demĂĄs, a pesar de sus humildes orĂgenes. ÂĄMadisyn no era de una familia rica! ÂĄSolo era la hija de unos agricultores! "ÂżQuĂŠ estĂĄs insinuando? ÂżQue me aventĂŠ por las escaleras? Mis piernas son mi vida; son esenciales para que pueda bailar. ÂżPor quĂŠ querrĂa lesionarlas?", soltĂł, poniĂŠndose mĂĄs emocionada con cada palabra que salĂa de su boca, hasta que comenzĂł a llorar dramĂĄticamente y colapsĂł en los brazos de Phyllis. De repente, Jenna instintivamente saltĂł de pie debido a un jarrĂłn roto. El silencio se instalĂł en la habitaciĂłn, mientras todos la veĂan con sorpresa, incluidos sus padres. Su agilidad habĂa sido sorprendente, ÂĄÂżpero no habĂa dicho que no podĂa levantarse debido a sus heridas?! CapĂtulo 2 El hombre mĂĄs rico de Gemond Al darse cuenta de su error, Jenna se desplomĂł en el sofĂĄ, se agarrĂł las piernas con dramatismo y comenzĂł a quejarse: "ÂĄAy, mis piernas! ÂĄMe duelen mucho!". Jeffry, en vez de enojarse con ella por su evidente mentira, culpĂł a Madisyn: "Por favor, entiende que Jenna es aĂşn muy joven. No le guardes rencor...". "Por supuesto. De hecho, no le guardarĂa rencor. DespuĂŠs de todo, aprendiĂł ese comportamiento de sus dueĂąos, Âżno?", respondiĂł la fastidiada joven, pues habĂa escuchado esa excusa varias veces. Hizo una Ăşltima mueca, con la que cortĂł la tensiĂłn en el aire, se colocĂł su sencilla bolsa sobre el hombro y se dirigiĂł hacia la puerta, con pasos firmes e inquebrantables. No le dedicĂł ni una sola mirada a la familia que dejaba atrĂĄs. Por su parte, los Chapman se quedaron furiosos por sus palabras. Afuera, el chofer esperaba, ajeno al tumulto que se habĂa desatado en el interior de la casa de sus jefes. Desde el regreso de Jenna, el respeto que el personal le mostraba a Madisyn habĂa disminuido considerablemente; por eso, el chofer no la saludĂł cuando la vio acercarse. La chica ignorĂł la presencia del empleado y pasĂł de largo; su postura era impecable y su actitud de evidente resoluciĂłn. "Me pidieron que te lleve a tu destino", dijo el trabajador, quien se habĂa apresurado a alcanzarla. "No es necesario. A partir de este momento, no quiero tener nada que ver con la familia Chapman", respondiĂł ella, en un tono gĂŠlido, girĂĄndose ligeramente para verlo. Tras dejar en claro su postura, parĂł un taxi y le pidiĂł al conductor que la llevara a la direcciĂłn que Jeffry le habĂa enviado previamente a su celular. Su destino era un pueblo humilde y en ruinas, que no compartĂa nada con la opulencia que alguna vez habĂa conocido. Al llegar, notĂł el mal estado de la casa de sus padres biolĂłgicos; ademĂĄs, en el aire flotaban unos sollozos que le desgarraron el corazĂłn. Apenas entrĂł, vio a muchas personas, aunque habĂa un contraste evidente entre ellas: por un lado se encontraba un hombre, vestido con un traje impecable y elegante, rodeado de guardaespaldas; justo enfrente de ĂŠl habĂa una pareja llorosa, ataviada con la sencilla ropa de los campesinos. Mientras la reciĂŠn llegada absorbĂa el surrealista cuadro, el hombre se girĂł: tenĂa los ojos enrojecidos y la mirada llena de incredulidad. Luego, corriĂł hacia ella con los brazos abiertos y, a pesar de su imponencia y altura, declarĂł con la voz quebrada: "ÂĄHija mĂa! ÂĄDe verdad eres tĂş! ÂĄNo puedo creer que realmente estĂŠs viva!". Madisyn se quedĂł perpleja. ÂżQuiĂŠn era ĂŠl y por quĂŠ actuaba asĂ? Se concentrĂł en la pareja de agricultores, con los ojos llorosos, que tenĂa frente a ella. Tras unos segundos de vacilaciĂłn, rompiĂł el silencio con voz temblorosa: "MamĂĄ, papĂĄ, ÂżquĂŠ estĂĄ pasando?". "No somos tus verdaderos padres. Jenna es la hija legĂtima de los Chapman, pero tĂş... tĂş no eres una de nosotros. Nuestro bebĂŠ naciĂł muerto", suspirĂł el campesino, con la voz cansada por el peso de las verdades no dichas. Luego de una pausa, seĂąalĂł al hombre bien vestido y aĂąadiĂł: "Ăl es tu verdadero padre". Los ojos de la joven se dirigieron al desconocido, percatĂĄndose de las innegables similitudes en sus rasgos. "Madisyn, cuando te vi por primera vez en el hospital, algo en ti me llamĂł la atenciĂłn, aunque lo desestimĂŠ entonces", explicĂł el hombre del traje, con la voz ahogada por la emociĂłn, mientras sacaba un documento de su maletĂn con la mano temblorosa. "DespuĂŠs de escuchar que los Chapman habĂan encontrado a su verdadera hija, no pude evitar preguntarme si lo que pasĂł hace aĂąos fue un error. Esta prueba de paternidad confirma mis sospechas: tĂş eres realmente mi hija". Ella tomĂł el documento y leyĂł la irrefutable prueba. De hecho, incluso sin esta, el parecido en sus facciones hablaba por sĂ mismo. Esa revelaciĂłn, ese nuevo giro en su ya compleja vida, la abrumĂł a tal grado que se quedĂł callada, mientras su cabeza se llenaba con cientos de ideas. "Yo sĂŠ que tienes mucho que asimilar, pero te aseguro que todo lo que te digo es verdad. La noche en que naciste, hubo un trĂĄgico error en el hospital y, por culpa de la negligencia de una enfermera, la vida de tres familias se entrelazĂł sin que lo supieran. Lo que pasĂł fue lo siguiente: el bebĂŠ de esta pareja fue declarado muerto y nos lo dieron a mi esposa y a mĂ por error; tĂş terminaste con los Chapman, y Jenna acabĂł aquĂ", continuĂł el hombre. "Tu madre y yo estĂĄbamos devastados. Pensamos que te habĂamos perdido para siempre. No tienes idea de lo mal que la pasĂł ella. Te estĂĄ esperando ansiosa en el hotel, feliz de que por fin podrĂĄ conocerte", aĂąadiĂł, mientras sus ojos se humedecĂan. Conmovida por su sinceridad, Madisyn asintiĂł lentamente, aunque su mirada se posĂł en la humilde pareja. "Todo esto fue un accidente. Ellos tambiĂŠn son vĂctimas de toda esta situaciĂłn y, aunque no puedo revivir a su hijo, les ofrecerĂŠ una compensaciĂłn por su pĂŠrdida", prometiĂł ĂŠl, en tono suave. "No necesitamos ninguna compensaciĂłn; saber la verdad es suficiente para nosotros", respondiĂł firmemente el campesino, agitando su mano con desdĂŠn para restarle importancia al asunto. Su tono dejaba entrever su cansancio y desilusiĂłn, pues desde que Jenna, la joven que su esposa y ĂŠl habĂan criado como suya, se reuniĂł con su familia biolĂłgica, su relaciĂłn se habĂa deteriorado considerablemente: ella habĂa roto todo contacto con ellos. "Lo mejor es que se vayan a casa. No es fĂĄcil que su familia se reencuentre, asĂ que no pierdan su tiempo aquĂ", dijo, con una expresiĂłn mezcla de tristeza y desapego, mientras guiaba a Madisyn y al hombre de traje hacia la puerta. La joven siguiĂł a su padre biolĂłgico hasta el reluciente Rolls-Royce estacionado en la acera. La opulencia del vehĂculo contrastaba enormemente con la humilde casa de la que acababan de salir. "Soy Glenn Johns, tu padre. De ahora en adelante, estoy aquĂ para ti; cualquier cosa que necesites, no dudes en pedĂrmela", se presentĂł ĂŠl, con voz suave, pero firme. Madisyn se dio cuenta de algo: Glenn Johns no era un millonario cualquiera, sino el CEO del Grupo Johns y, por ende, el hombre mĂĄs rico en Gemond. Poco a poco, fue asimilando las implicaciones de su nueva ascendencia y cuando esa pesada y profunda verdad se instalĂł en su cabeza y en su corazĂłn, asintiĂł lentamente. El Hotel Alpenglow era el mĂĄs lujoso de Gemond. Jenna, envuelta en un holgado vestido Chanel, encarnaba la elegancia, mientras entraba en el gran vestĂbulo con sus padres. La ocasiĂłn era trascendental. Phyllis acababa de enterarse de que Lynda Johns, vicepresidenta de la AsociaciĂłn de Danza y jueza de la competencia nacional, estaba en la ciudad. Al instante, la madre vio que tenĂa una oportunidad de oro: si lograba que su hija estuviera bajo la tutela de tan distinguida figura, prĂĄcticamente le estarĂa asegurando el campeonato. Con eso en mente, hizo que su vĂĄstago se pusiera su mejor atuendo y la llevĂł al hotel. Sin embargo, no se esperĂł que la recibirĂa una sorpresa. Madisyn estaba de pie, al otro lado del vestĂbulo. A pesar de su atuendo simple, una playera y un pantalĂłn de mezclilla, la serena gracia que poseĂa hacĂa que todas las miradas se volcaran en ella. A su lado estaba un hombre trajeado, cuya presencia era impactante, aunque Phyllis no podĂa ver su rostro desde su posiciĂłn. "ÂżMadisyn? ÂżQuĂŠ estĂĄ haciendo aquĂ?", murmurĂł entre dientes la confundida y molesta mujer. CapĂtulo 3 Su verdadera familia "Seguramente se filtrĂł la noticia de la llegada de la seĂąorita Johns. Parece que Madisyn tambiĂŠn estĂĄ interesada en aprender de ella. Un momento, Âży si la seĂąorita Johns no estĂĄ enterada de que la expulsamos de nuestra familia? ÂĄParece que ambas terminaremos siendo sus alumnas!", dijo Jenna en voz baja, con la voz llena de curiosidad y fingiendo inocencia. El rostro de Phyllis se ensombreciĂł a causa de la preocupaciĂłn, al escuchar a su hija. AcelerĂł el paso, con la clara intenciĂłn de interceptar a Madisyn antes de que pudiera establecer conexiones influyentes. Sin embargo, antes de que pudiera alcanzarla, la chica se metiĂł a la Sala de Esmeralda, la habitaciĂłn mĂĄs exclusiva y privada del hotel. La mujer se quedĂł perpleja; ÂżquĂŠ hacĂan allĂ? Jenna la alcanzĂł, igual de sorprendida que ella, y le compartiĂł sus impresiones: "MamĂĄ, ese recinto no estĂĄ abierto para cualquiera. Parece que Madisyn estĂĄ mejor relacionada de lo que creĂamos. Supongo que debe tener algunas amistades muy influyentes". "ÂżQuĂŠ clase de amigos podrĂa tener?", murmurĂł Phyllis amargamente. Al instante, su mente se llenĂł de suposiciones desfavorables. Ese y otros pensamientos similares la disgustaron profundamente, pero sabĂa que no tenĂa tiempo para darle vueltas al asunto. Con urgencia, sacĂł su celular y marcĂł el nĂşmero de Lynda. "Disculpa, estoy ocupada con un asunto urgente", respondiĂł esta, de forma brusca y distante, antes de colgar. Jenna cediĂł ante la desesperaciĂłn. Su ĂĄnimo se desplomĂł, asĂ que se cubriĂł el rostro con las manos. Ni asĂ pudo evitar que las lĂĄgrimas se escurrieran por sus dedos. Jeffry la rodeĂł con sus brazos, y le dijo con una voz suave y llena de seguridad: "No te preocupes, hija. Ya habrĂĄ otras oportunidades. Te prometo que encontraremos la manera de contactarte con ella". Mientras tanto, Lynda colocĂł nuevamente su celular en el cojĂn que estaba a su lado. Su hermano Glenn habĂa convocado a una reuniĂłn familiar urgente, pues despuĂŠs de mucho tiempo, habĂa encontrado a su hija perdida. "Madisyn debe haber pasado por muchas complicaciones en su vida", comentĂł Kristine Johns, quien estaba sentada elegantemente a su lado. Sus rasgos eran llamativos, su maquillaje exquisito y el vestido que llevaba puesto, bastante lujoso. Y aunque proyectaba la imagen de una dama refinada, su expresiĂłn revelaba su profunda preocupaciĂłn. "EscuchĂŠ que su antigua familia la tratĂł bastante bien. Puede que no haya enfrentado las dificultades que imaginamos", respondiĂł la reflexiva Lynda. "Es crucial que le brindemos nuestro calor y apoyo", contestĂł la muchacha, llena de convicciĂłn. Lynda le acariciĂł afectuosamente la cabeza a su alumna, orgullosa de su buen carĂĄcter. Kristine habĂa sido adoptada por la familia Johns. Su disposiciĂłn a aceptar a Madisyn resaltaba su espĂritu generoso y amable. Quedaba claro que no le preocupaba que el regreso de la chica pusiera en peligro su posiciĂłn. En una esquina, Elaine Johns estaba sentada en silencio, con la mirada fija en la puerta. Se veĂa ansiosa y expectante. Kristine captĂł su intensa mirada y se sintiĂł ligeramente inquieta. Finalmente, la puerta se abriĂł, la joven que entrĂł era hermosa. Sus rasgos exquisitos y su temple sereno replicaban de forma sorprendente los de Elaine, a tal grado que era innegable su parentesco. Kristine sintiĂł un vacĂo inexplicable al verla. En contraste, Elaine, incapaz de contener sus emociones por mĂĄs tiempo, se lanzĂł hacia ella. "ÂĄMi hija!", exclamĂł mientras la abrazaba con fuerza y las lĂĄgrimas escurrĂan por sus mejillas. La chica se quedĂł momentĂĄneamente atĂłnita por la intensa bienvenida y le dio unas suaves palmaditas a la mujer en la espalda. De repente, una nueva calidez se extendiĂł en su interior. Por fin sabĂa quĂŠ se sentĂa tener una familia amorosa... "CariĂąo, primero deja que Madisyn se siente", dijo Glenn con gentileza. Mientras se acomodaban en el sofĂĄ, la madre se aferrĂł a su hija, esforzĂĄndose por contenerse para que no se le quebrara la voz por culpa de las lĂĄgrimas: "PerdĂłnanos por habernos tardado tanto en encontrarte. Debes haber sufrido tanto". "Yo... No te preocupes. Estoy bien". Las lĂĄgrimas de Elaine, cĂĄlidas y sinceras, goteaban sobre la mano de Madisyn, quien se sentĂa un poco desconcertada. Sin embargo, conmovida por la muestra de amor sincero, comentĂł para tranquilizarla: "No llores, mamĂĄ. Ahora estamos juntas". La palabra "mamĂĄ" causĂł en Elaine una profunda alegrĂa. "SĂ, volviste. Y prometo arreglar todo", dijo con voz temblorosa. Glenn observĂł el intercambio con una radiante sonrisa. Su entusiasmo era palpable mientras miraba a su retoĂąo. La joven, sintiendo el peso de su mirada, volteĂł a verlo y musitĂł: "Ah... PapĂĄ". "Estamos tan felices de que hayas vuelto a nuestro lado, mi Madisyn", soltĂł el sonriente hombre, con el semblante radiante, por la expresiĂłn de alegrĂa pura que lo inundaba. "DĂŠjame presentarte a nuestra familia. Esta es tu tĂa Lynda". La susodicha la mirĂł y le ofreciĂł un leve asentimiento con la cabeza, en seĂąal de reconocimiento; la chica le devolviĂł el gesto con una calidez educada. Luego, intercambiĂł formalidades con Kristine, quien le dijo con una sonrisa radiante. "No sabes cuĂĄnto tiempo llevo esperando para decir esto: ÂĄpor fin tengo una hermana a la que puedo presumir!". "Esta es Kristine. PerdiĂł a sus padres cuando era muy joven y como tu papĂĄ y el suyo eran cercanos, la acogimos. Pero si eso te incomoda...", intervino Elaine, con un tono ligeramente dubitativo. "Para nada", la interrumpiĂł suavemente Madisyn, pues entendĂa la implicaciĂłn. "TambiĂŠn tienes tres hermanos, aunque no estĂĄn aquĂ ahora. ÂĄNos aseguraremos de que los conozcas mĂĄs tarde!", continuĂł la madre, cuyo rostro se habĂa iluminado al notar el asentimiento de aceptaciĂłn de su hija. "Madisyn, seguramente pasaste unos aĂąos muy duros. Empecemos por intercambiar nĂşmeros", sugiriĂł Glenn, sacando su celular. "TambiĂŠn pĂĄsame tu nĂşmero", soltĂł Elaine con entusiasmo, siguiendo el ejemplo de su esposo. La chica accediĂł y, apenas registrĂł los nĂşmeros de sus padres, aparecieron en su celular dos notificaciones. Cada uno de sus progenitores le habĂa enviado diez millones de dĂłlares por Internet. "Tu madre y te mandĂŠ un poco de dinero para que lo gastes en lo que quieras. Si no es suficiente, siempre puedes pedirle mĂĄs a papĂĄ", dijo el sonriente Gleen, con un tono lleno de una generosidad casual. Su esposa no se quedĂł atrĂĄs y aĂąadiĂł: "Ya te comprĂŠ algo de ropa. ÂĄPuedes probĂĄrtela cuando lleguemos a casa!". Esa avalancha de generosidad era desconocida para Madisyn, quien sintiĂł que una calidez, que desconocĂa hasta ese momento, la envolvĂa. En contraste, Kristine estaba inquieta y sorprendida. Glenn y Elaine acababan de transferir casualmente veinte millones de dĂłlares a esa chica, una suma que eclipsaba su propia mesada mensual, que en honor a la verdad era relativamente modesta. ÂżAcaso se mostraban tan generosos con Madisyn por ser su hija biolĂłgica, mientras que a ella la trataban diferente por ser adoptada? CapĂtulo 4 Su hermano Durante toda la comida, Elaine y Glenn se turnaron para llenar el plato de Madisyn, hasta que tuvo una montaĂąita de alimentos frente a ella. Por supuesto, cuando la joven terminĂł de comer, se sentĂa satisfecha y, sobre todo, reconfortada por la novedosa muestra de afecto, expresada con cada platillo que sus padres le ofrecĂan. Repentinamente, sonĂł el celular de Glenn, interrumpiendo el momento. El hombre mirĂł en la pantalla el nombre de la persona que lo contactaba y, al instante, una amplia sonrisa se extendiĂł por su rostro. "Madisyn, el mĂĄs joven de tus hermanos mayores estĂĄ llamando. Seguro estĂĄ ansioso por conocerte", declarĂł. Apenas aceptĂł la videollamada, una voz rebosante de entusiasmo se escuchĂł fuerte y claro: "ÂżLa encontraste? ÂĄYa quiero verla!". Glenn mirĂł a su hija, y apenas esta le dedicĂł un tĂmido asentimiento, ĂŠl apuntĂł la cĂĄmara hacia ella y la presentĂł: "Esta es tu hermanita, Madisyn". "ÂĄSĂ, definitivamente somos parientes!", dijo el rostro en la pantalla, que se habĂa iluminado con una sonrisa traviesa. El corazĂłn de la aludida dio un vuelco al reconocerlo: frente a ella estaba Waylon, el famoso y premiado actor. En un instante, su mundo se expandiĂł: parecĂa que sus conexiones familiares llegaban a ĂĄmbitos que nunca habĂa imaginado. "Hola", saludĂł la chica, en un susurro. "Madisyn, estoy atrapado en el set ya mismo, asĂ que no puedo regresar, ÂĄpero pronto te enviarĂŠ algo especial!", respondiĂł Waylon Johns, cuya emociĂłn y cariĂąo eran palpables a travĂŠs del celular. A pesar de su reciĂŠn descubierto vĂnculo biolĂłgico, la calidez del hombre fue inmediata y genuina. De hecho, tanto ĂŠl como sus hermanos habĂan deseado por mucho tiempo tener una hermana menor. Aunque tenĂan a Kristine, sus padres la adoptaron cuando ya no era una bebĂŠ; ademĂĄs, no estaba relacionada con ellos por sangre, lo que hacĂa que no fueran tan cercanos. De repente, como si se le hubiera ocurrido algo, Waylon le hablĂł al hombre, de porte noble y expresiĂłn distante, que estaba a su lado: "Andrew, mira a mi hermana. ÂżNo es adorable?". Andrew Klein, conocido por su presencia reservada e imponente, volteĂł a ver el dispositivo. En el momento en que vio a la chica que estaba en la pantalla, su mirada despreocupada se congelĂł. El largo y suave cabello de Madisyn caĂa sobre sus hombros y sus delicadas facciones, que indudablemente evocaban los genes de la familia Johns. Su apariencia era verdaderamente cautivadora. De hecho, sus ojos color ĂĄmbar, que tenĂan un toque de pereza e indiferencia, parecĂan calmar la habitaciĂłn misma. En contraste, los ojos de Andrew eran profundos y penetrantes. La chica mantuvo la compostura mientras continuaba la videollamada, pero la reacciĂłn de Kristine fue menos controlada. Ante la menciĂłn de "Andrew", su cuerpo se tensĂł y sus ojos se clavaron en la pantalla, en donde vio al susodicho, tan imponente como siempre. Consciente de su actitud distante, creyĂł que no le prestarĂa mucha atenciĂłn a Madisyn. "Hola", saludĂł Andrew, brevemente y en voz baja. Al escuchar eso, la incĂłmoda Kristine se clavĂł las uĂąas en sus palmas. Luego se tranquilizĂł, repitiĂŠndose mentalmente que el gesto del hombre no era mĂĄs que una mera formalidad. Por su parte, Madisyn respondiĂł con un asentimiento cortĂŠs, mostrando un comportamiento calmado y reservado. Acto seguido, Waylon continuĂł hablando con su hermana, hasta que Glenn intervino, recordĂĄndole que esta tenĂa que comer. Aunque su padre le habĂa colgado, el hombre seguĂa visiblemente encantado. VolteĂł a ver a su amigo y le dijo con una sonrisa: "Esa es mi hermana menor, que estuvo perdida por muchos aĂąos. ÂżNo te parece adorable? Necesito terminar rĂĄpido las escenas de hoy, porque me muero de ganas de regresar y conocerla en persona". Luego, le lanzĂł una invitaciĂłn casual a Andrew: "Oye, Âżno quieres acompaĂąarme?". SabĂa que era una posibilidad remota, pues este evitaba las visitas a la residencia de la familia Johns, por culpa del evidente afecto de Kristine. Anteriormente habĂa existido un posible arreglo de matrimonio entre las familias Johns y Klein, pero era meramente un acuerdo verbal hecho por los ancianos. Los Klein, una familia prominente de Ansport, estaban muy por encima de los Johns, radicados en Gemond, en estatus e influencia, una brecha que Kristine parecĂa ignorar, pues se aferraba a la idea de casarse con el joven heredero, Andrew. "Claro, hace tiempo que no veo a tus padres", respondiĂł ĂŠl. 'ÂżLo dice en serio?', se preguntĂł Waylon, parpadeando ante la repentina aceptaciĂłn. CapĂtulo 5 La tonta arrogante Una vez que terminaron de comer, los Johns se dirigieron a su enorme mansiĂłn, que eclipsaba la sencilla villa de la familia Chapman, tanto en escala como en esplendor. La finca exudaba una elegancia majestuosa, que replicaba la de un castillo. Elaine acompaùó ansiosamente a Madisyn a travĂŠs de los vastos pasillos, hasta que llegĂł a una habitaciĂłn que habĂa preparado especialmente para ella. El lugar era la viva imagen de elegancia femenina, pintado con delicados tonos pastel y adornado concienzudamente con detalles exquisitos. La chica se quedĂł sin palabras ante el aire de feminidad que inundaba la estancia. "Hija, Âżte gusta?", le preguntĂł suavemente la mayor, con ojos expectantes. "SĂ, me encanta", respondiĂł ella, con un ligero toque de impotencia. Su madre le dedicĂł una brillante sonrisa, le apretĂł la mano suavemente y comentĂł con alegrĂa: "ÂĄMe alegra oĂr eso! Si necesitas algo, solo dĂmelo". Tras un segundo, aĂąadiĂł: "Ahora, dĂŠjame mostrarte las prendas que tu padre y yo escogimos para ti!". Acto seguido, Elaine abriĂł las puertas del clĂłset con un gesto grandilocuente. Los ojos de Madisyn se agrandaron al ver la variedad de ropa en su interior: habĂa filas de vestidos exquisitos y opulentos que brillaban bajo la tenue iluminaciĂłn. "Y esto es solo el comienzo. MaĂąana llegarĂĄn mĂĄs", anunciĂł la madre. "Gracias, mamĂĄ, pero... Âżno crees que es demasiado?", sondeĂł la joven. Su progenitora se rio ligeramente, desestimando su preocupaciĂłn. "ÂĄNunca! Una chica nunca tiene suficientes vestidos. MĂĄs tarde iremos de compras, para que puedas aĂąadir cualquier cosa que te guste", declarĂł con una generosa sonrisa. La muchacha, aunque abrumada, se sintiĂł profundamente agradecida por todos sus gestos y atenciones. Elaine habĂa planeado esperar unos dĂas antes de cambiarle el nombre a su reciĂŠn encontrada hija. Sin embargo, Madisyn, al sentir el amor genuino de sus padres biolĂłgicos, no vio razĂłn para retrasarlo. Esa misma tarde visitaron el Registro Civil, donde ella adoptĂł oficialmente el apellido Johns, convirtiĂŠndose en Madisyn Johns. Una vez que completaron los trĂĄmites legales, Elaine apretĂł su mano y le dijo con la voz llena de emociĂłn: "CariĂąo, llegĂł el momento de que vayamos de compras; seguro que encuentras algo que te guste". Glenn les dedicĂł una mirada tierna y luego expresĂł con un tono de arrepentimiento: "Disfruten mucho de la experiencia. Yo tengo trabajo esta tarde y no puedo acompaĂąarlas. AquĂ tienen diez millones. CĂłmprense lo que les guste". Madisyn, quien ya se estaba acostumbrando al opulento estilo de vida de su familia, tomĂł la generosa suma, mientras le daba las gracias a su padre. Ăl le acariciĂł la cabeza con cariĂąo; en sus ojos brillaba el afecto paternal. El Centro Comercial Moonshine era el mĂĄs exclusivo de Gemond. La madre llevĂł a su hija hasta la elegante boutique de Chanel. Sus ojos se llenaron de emociĂłn al imaginĂĄrsela vestida con cada una de las prendas. RĂĄpidamente le escogiĂł una variedad de atuendos y le dijo: "CariĂąo, pruĂŠbate estos. Si te quedan bien, nos llevamos todo". Madisyn, se sintiĂł algo abrumada, pero querĂa complacer a su madre, asĂ que agarrĂł la ropa. Estaba a punto de dirigirse al probador cuando notĂł que Phyllis y Jenna se acercaban. Phyllis habĂa llevado a su hija, que claramente estaba de mal humor, de compras, con la esperanza de levantarle el ĂĄnimo. Cuando vio a la joven a la que le habĂa hecho la vida imposible, Jenna exclamĂł con incredulidad: "ÂżMadisyn?". Elaine se girĂł al escuchar que alguien llamaba a su niĂąa y reconociĂł al instante a ese par. Su expresiĂłn se suavizĂł, pues reconocĂa el papel que la familia Chapman habĂa tenido en la crianza de su vĂĄstago. De hecho, Glenn ya habĂa acordado trabajar con la empresa de la familia Chapman por haber criado a su hija durante todos esos aĂąos. Esa era la razĂłn por la que habĂa regresado ese dĂa mĂĄs temprano a la empresa: para discutir con Jeffry su futura cooperaciĂłn. Elaine se estaba preparando para saludar cĂĄlidamente a Phyllis y Jenna, e incluso pensĂł en cubrir sus compras en la tienda como un gesto de buena voluntad, cuando el tono de la mĂĄs joven cambiĂł bruscamente. "Madisyn, ÂżquĂŠ haces aquĂ? Esta es una boutique Chanel. ÂżAcaso te alcanza para comprarte lo mĂĄs barato?". Phyllis escrutĂł a la atacada. Estaba confundida por verla ahĂ y pronto su rostro se ensombreciĂł, pues recordĂł la escena que habĂa presenciado en el Hotel Alpenglow mĂĄs temprano. "ÂżPor quĂŠ no estĂĄs con tus padres pobres? ÂżDe dĂłnde sacaste el dinero para comprar artĂculos de lujo?", la cuestionĂł. "Lo que yo haga ya no es de su incumbencia", respondiĂł la ofendida, sin atisbo de calidez y con una expresiĂłn de helada indiferencia. En ese momento, la visiĂłn que Madisyn tenĂa sobre la familia Chapman se rompiĂł y le quedĂł claro que muchos aĂąos les habĂa dado su lealtad, sin reciprocidad alguna. De hecho, habĂa elevado su modesto negocio a una empresa cotizada en bolsa, creyendo que con eso pagaba la deuda de gratitud por haberla criado. Sin embargo, los Chapman no eran conscientes de su ayuda. La expresiĂłn de Elaine se volviĂł severa al escuchar las duras palabras de Phyllis. Siempre habĂa creĂdo que esa familia habĂa tratado a su pequeĂąa con amor, pero la realidad que tenĂa frente a ella era completamente diferente: no se preocupaban por ella, sino que la trataban con franca hostilidad. "Disculpe, entiendo que esta joven fue una vez una hija para usted, Âżpor quĂŠ la estĂĄ tratando asĂ ahora?", intervino, incapaz de contener su consternaciĂłn. Como habĂa conseguido captar una audiencia, Phyllis exhalĂł profundamente, y, con una expresiĂłn de dolorosa resignaciĂłn, dijo: "De hecho, hubo una ĂŠpoca en la que ella fue como una hija para mĂ. SeĂąora, dĂŠjeme advertirle algo: no se deje engaĂąar por su apariencia. Es una mentirosa compulsiva que se atreviĂł a robarle dinero a su propia familia. ÂĄEs una desgracia!". Tras tomar un respiro, siguiĂł con un tono de fingida angustia: "Al descubrir sus terribles acciones, me decepcionĂŠ profundamente de ella y no me quedĂł otra opciĂłn que expulsarla de mi familia, a pesar de todos los aĂąos que pasamos criĂĄndola como una de los nuestros". Phyllis estaba decidida a dejar mal parada a Madisyn de todas las formas posibles, para que ninguna dama adinerada la tuviera en alta estima. No podĂa permitirse que se corrieran los rumores de que era demasiado dura con la chica a la que alguna vez habĂa tratado como su hija. Para hacer sus palabras mĂĄs convincentes, incluso se secĂł los ojos, fingiendo que se enjugaba las lĂĄgrimas, para subrayar su supuesta desesperaciĂłn. Phyllis la estaba desacreditando activamente frente a su madre. La expresiĂłn de Madisyn se endureciĂł, y un destello de ira comenzĂł a arder en sus pupilas... ...... ==== Madisyn se quedĂł de piedra al descubrir que no era hija biolĂłgica de sus padres. Luego la verdadera hija de esa familia le tendiĂł una trampa, haciendo que la echaran de casa y se convirtiera en el hazmerreĂr de todos. Creyendo que era hija de campesinos, Madisyn se sorprendiĂł al descubrir que su verdadero padre era el hombre mĂĄs rico de la ciudad y que sus hermanos eran figuras de renombre en sus respectivos campos. Todos la colmaron de amor, solo para enterarse de que Madisyn tenĂa un prĂłspero negocio propio...... ÂżQuĂŠ sucederĂĄ en adelante? Los capĂtulos disponibles son limitados aquĂ, haga click el botĂłn abajo para instalar APP y disfrutar leyendo mĂĄs contenidos maravillosos. (Al abrir el APP, directo accederĂĄ a este libro) &3& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14248375-fb_contact-spp | Mobo-ReaderďźFunny Reading | https://www.facebook.com/100077707484555/ | 39,208 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.manobook.com | IMAGE | https://fbweb.manobook.com/14248375-fb_contact-spp65_2-0921-core2.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=1200042107899505&rawadid=120210514845740639 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-1.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/461608118_560136146439508_2975185593961675745_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=5QvUe4Wb7SUQ7kNvgHKaq7Z&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-1.fna&_nc_gid=A_0eyH__1jAQB3GbaBl1S_q&oh=00_AYCH2bHKto8eIc2935uS7FTVerGdWvJi1MO9M9SGpQSB9w&oe=671912F1 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Mobo-ReaderďźFunny Reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,021 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222020}' |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đRead the next chaptersđ | Chapter 1 Everyone called her a party girl. This time, however, Mia Shaw finally met her match. The whole city was waiting to see her make a fool of herself. There was a dinner party following her breakup with her ex. Unexpectedly, she hooked up with the most esteemed man in Hampshire City at this party. He was the perfect husband, but he had one fatal flaw. ⌠The ballroom was dazzling with lights and elegantly dressed guests. In the southeastern corner, Victor Gray was chatting up a beautiful woman. He had his arms wrapped around her, and he was completely unaware of Mia approaching. âVictor, I heard you and Mia have set a date for your marriage. Congratulations!â âI never said Iâd marry her. Now that sheâs done fooling around, she wants a decent man to settle down with? Itâs wishful thinking on her part.â His friend was surprised. âHavenât you been pursuing her for years?â âI was only pretending to be in love with her.â Victor caressed the womanâs waist and replied indifferently. âEveryone else has had their fun with her. Iâm not about to marry someone like that.â Mia was shocked. Victor had always appeared devoted to her. Although she was not particularly fond of him, she had taken their engagement seriously and even announced it herself. She usually rejected others, but it turned out that she could be rejected too. Right then, someone noticed her and started signaling to Victor. Victor received the cue and turned around. He panicked for a moment when he saw Mia. But he quickly hid it and pretended to be unbothered. âSince youâve heard everything, letâs clear things up. I invited you here to break up with you, not announce our wedding. Ivyâs conceived, and I need to accept responsibility.â The crowd turned their eyes toward them. There was surprise, but mostly jeers. After all, Mia getting dumped was quite the show. Despite her tarnished reputation, she had been lucky enough that the Gray family was willing to accept her. Without Victor, who else would want her? No matter how enchanting she was, everyone still treated her like dirt. Mia remained composed and showed no reaction. She then scanned the room until her gaze landed on a handsome man in the corner. She was looking at Nolan Locke, the Locke familyâs wealthy and aloof heir. This family had a century-old empire and held a near-royal status in Hampshire City. Even the Gray family had to respect them. She gracefully walked up to Nolan in her champagne-colored gown. Mia had such refined beauty that it was as if she had been sculpted by a master. Nolan assessed her with calm eyes as she wrapped her fingers around his tie and gave it a few twists. He narrowed his eyes but did not stop her. She leaned in and whispered, âActually, I had my eye on you first, but I couldnât resist Victorâs relentless pursuit. Now that weâve broken up, Iâd like to pursue you. Is that okay?â Victor was the first to react. He nearly jumped up and scoffed loudly. âMia, are you crazy? Trying to salvage your dignity by going after Nolan? Heâs a good friend of mine. What makes you think heâd give you any attention?â Mia ignored him as if his words were just white noise. Her shimmering eyes stayed fixed on Nolan as she waited quietly for his response. There was a hint of interest in his dark eyes, and he smirked. âSure. You can pursue me. Donât mind him.â As soon as he spoke, the room erupted into murmurs. Even the boastful Victor was taken aback. Mia was not confident that Nolan would entertain her advances. The Gray and Locke families were family friends, so Nolan would likely reject her. If he did that, she would also be humiliated. However, she did not care. Dignity was something she had lost long ago. She suddenly expressed interest in Nolan just to spite Victor. She released Nolanâs tie and prepared to leave. However, he grabbed her waist and pulled her close with his hand firmly on her back. His deep voice was full of allure. âDidnât you say you wanted to pursue me? Leaving already?â Mia frowned slightly. Nolan was not playing by the rules and being even more proactive than she had expected. She only mentioned that she would pursue him, not that she would start immediately. But since they were still in public, she had to keep up the act. Her fingers crawled up his neck as she murmured shyly, âThere are too many people here.â âAlright. Letâs go somewhere less crowded,â Nolan easily agreed and surprised Mia with his compliance. He wrapped his arm around her as everyone watched. Victorâs shouting followed them while they exited the ballroom, but Nolan ignored him. Eventually, Victor caught up to them. âNolan, youâre taking this joke too far.â Nolan turned back calmly. âWerenât you just playing with her? You wronged her first, so donât put the blame on others. Iâm taking her away.â With that, he led Mia downstairs. Mia felt a bit awkward. âMr. Locke, thank you for helping me out.â Nolan had always been Miaâs type, both in terms of appearance and personal qualities. When she first met the men, she was indeed more interested in Nolan. But Victor announced that he wanted to woo her, so all his friends avoided her to prevent any misunderstandings. Otherwise, she might have actually pursued Nolan herself. Nolan looked at her. His affectionate and inviting eyes seemed to whisper sweet nothings. âDo you really want to pursue me?â âMaybe Iâll give it a shot. Thereâs no one I canât win over,â Mia replied. Nolan smiled faintly. Perhaps he was amused, or he found her amusing. âPursuing me wonât be easy.â âIâm not afraid of a challenge.â âThen, show me your sincerity.â Mia looked at him in confusion. Forty minutes later, she understood what he meant by âsincerity.â He had taken her to a hotel. As they fell onto the large bed, Mia felt a little disoriented. What was this? She had never heard of showing sincerity by starting in bed. This sequence seemed illogical. By the time she realized what was happening, there was no turning back. The soft and clean sheets beneath them creased and ruffled. Nolan had a reputation for being chaste and unmotivated by lust. Meanwhile, Mia was a reputed vixen of the city. But at that moment, she felt that Nolan played the game far better than she did. In reality, Mia was still innocent, and Nolan was her first. Midway through, he seemed to realize this as well, and surprise flashed in his eyes. âYouâre...â Feeling embarrassed, Mia pretended to be impatient. âAre we doing this or not? If we are, hurry up. I donât like men who talk too much in bed.â Nolan raised an eyebrow in amusement, and an unreadable smile crossed his face. After a heated night, Mia woke up late the next morning. But Nolan was nowhere to be seen in the room. Her clothes were hanging neatly on the couch beside the bed and within easy reach. Last night, they had been scattered all over the floor. So, Nolan probably tidied the place when he got up. Chapter 2 After Mia changed her clothes, Nolan returned to the room. Mia was slightly startled. âI thought you had already left.â Nolan remained silent, and his gaze fell on the spot where she had slept. The white sheets bore a red stain. Nolanâs expression was complex. Rumors had painted Mia as a woman who had been with countless men, and everyone thought that her dignity had been tarnished long ago. He never expected her to be the first time. Mia thought he might be worried that she would use this to cling to him. So, she spoke first, âDonât worry. I have no hang-ups, and I wonât expect you to take responsibility. This was my choice.â Sleeping with a handsome man like Nolan did not feel like a loss to her. His skills had matched his looks, and she had enjoyed it. It seemed fair. Nolan was about to say something but paused. He chose his words carefully before he finally said, âA single night doesnât really mean anything.â Mia nodded in understanding, as this was within her expectations. Nolan called for room service, and soon, they delivered a lavish breakfast spread. Both of them sat at the table and ate in an oddly silent atmosphere. Mia accidentally smeared some of the sandwich she was eating on her lips. She was about to wipe it off with a napkin when Nolan reached across and steadied her chin with one hand. Then, he wiped the smudge off with the thumb of his other hand. It was a moment of closeness in their sober state. Unexpectedly, Mia felt her face warm up. âMia, once you start pursuing me, you canât pursue anyone else,â Nolan said as he looked intently at her. Mia was taken aback. âWhy not?â Nolan frowned, and he was puzzled by her question. Mia explained, âIf Iâm the one pursuing, the initiative is mine. If I canât win you over, arenât I allowed to give up and pursue someone else?â Her logic stumped Nolan for a moment. Mia added, âBesides, Iâve decided not to pursue you anymore.â Nolan furrowed his brows even further, and his demeanor became cold. âWhat did you say?â âWeâve already slept together before Iâve had the chance to pursue you properly. Do I really need to continue?â Mia spread her hands. Nolan could not help but laugh, albeit bitterly. He remembered the rumors painting Mia as a party girl. She truly lived up to her reputation. âSo, you pursue someone just to sleep with them?â The usually aloof Nolan Locke was almost driven to say something as undignified as âEven if you have my body, you wonât have my heart.â âNot really,â Mia admitted and felt a bit guilty. âBut itâs not like youâd actually marry me.â âWho says itâs impossible?â Nolan replied slowly. Mia was stunned. Although the Shaw family was part of the elite, it did not compare to the century-old, prestigious families like the Gray and Locke families. The Locke family was influential in real estate, tourism, energy, finance, and more. Mentioning the Locke family in Hampshire City alone could shake the ground. Families clamored to align themselves with the Locke family through marriage. The Shaw family did not come close. Would the Locke family really consider her? Was Nolan just playing with her? Mia put down her cutlery. âIâm full. Could you please take me home, Mr. Locke?â Nolan was frustrated, and he felt that she was not taking him seriously. After a drag, he nonchalantly said, âAnd here I thought I had met someone interesting. Miss Shaw, you might as well go back on your own. Iâm not headed that way.â Mia picked up her bag and stood up gracefully. âMr. Locke, donât bother trying to provoke me. I may not have the best reputation, but I have my principles. I wonât be anyoneâs mistress.â Miaâs aunt, Ellen Shaw, had pressured her to marry a man over seventy to escape her circumstances, but she was not about to jump from one cage into another. She sought an equal relationship. Only then would she have the freedom to pursue what she wanted. Mia turned to leave, but as she opened the door, Nolanâs voice rang out. âI canât promise Iâll marry you, but becoming an official couple isnât out of the question.â Mia stopped in her tracks. She really needed to improve her status, especially if she wanted to be with someone as influential as Nolan. Only then would she not be treated like a commodity or be handed out to anyone who showed interest. Ellen had tolerated her past relationship with Victor because of the Gray familyâs status. Since Victor had broken off their engagement, Mia was worried about facing Ellen at home. Her suggestion for Nolan to drive her home had also been strategic. If Ellen saw that Mia had gotten with Nolan, she would likely be less critical. âReally? Iâll hold you to it, then.â Mia turned around with gleaming eyes. âI donât have many virtues, but the one I do have is loyalty!â Mia knew that it would be tough. However, with Nolanâs heart softening, she was no longer afraid about not winning him over. She may not have much experience in pursuing others, but she was well-versed in being pursued. With sincere intentions, she was sure that she could turn this small opening into a real opportunity. Nolan began to walk away. After a few steps, he noticed that Mia had not followed, so he turned back with a frown. âArenât you coming?â Mia feigned ignorance. âSo, weâre headed the same way now?â Nolan did not reply this time and just continued walking. Bouncing after him, she caught up and entered the elevator with him. Her exquisite face carried a hint of playfulness. Nolanâs expression remained impassive, and his tall figure exuded a silent coldness. However, he seemed less unapproachable next to the woman with a bright, blooming smile. Eventually, Nolan dropped Mia off at her home. The car glided smoothly up to the front of the villa without any attempt to hide. âThank you for the ride, Mr. Locke,â Mia said as she got out of the car before bowing slightly in gratitude. âIt was on my way,â Nolan replied. The car window rolled up and obscured his face behind the privacy glass. Then, the car pulled away. Mia stood there and remained polite as she watched him drive off. She took her time to enter the house. While she bent down to change her shoes, a fierce female voice bombarded her with questions, âWhere were you last night? You didnât come home! And who dropped you off?!â Ellen was standing at the center of the living room, and her stern gaze was fixed on Mia. Miaâs mother had passed away early on, while her father never provided for her. He was mostly reliant on his brother and sister-in-lawâs charity throughout his life. As they did not have children of their own, Miaâs father had shamelessly exchanged her for a substantial sum of money. Ellen had been meticulous in Miaâs upbringing by making her attend classes for piano, cello, dance, horse riding, and golf. Everything a lady of a wealthy household should know, Mia had to learn. Everyone praised Ellen for her generosity toward a child who was not her own. But only Mia knew that Ellen saw her as a valuable asset. She was to be groomed for an advantageous marriage. As such, Ellen was particularly strict with Mia; she allowed her almost no personal freedom. âIt was Nolan Locke, the Locke familyâs eldest son.â At the mention of Nolanâs name, Ellenâs face immediately lit up. âThe heir to the Locke Group, Nolan Locke?â Mia nodded quietly. Ellen quickly dropped the subject. Mia scoffed inwardly. Ellen did not truly care whether she was fooling around with men. All that mattered to Ellen was the status of the man involved and whether he could be of benefit to her career. Chapter 3 âTell me. Whatâs going on with you and Victor?â âWe broke up. He initiated it.â âThe engagement announcement was already made public. Do you think this is some childâs play?â âHe cheated, and that woman is carrying his child. Itâs better this way. I donât want to have anything to do with him anymore.â âUseless!â Ellen cursed. However, it was unclear if she was scolding Victor for his lack of morals or Mia for failing to secure her man. Ellen grew increasingly angry. She strode over to Mia and poked her temple. âDo you really think you can level up to the Locke family? What makes you think someone like Nolan Locke would care for your background? Iâll lay it out for you now. Either you make up with Victor and continue with the wedding or start accompanying me to social events again and prepare for an arranged marriage.â The mention of an arranged marriage made Mia shiver. Previously, Ellen had mentioned a property tycoon in his seventies. The man had outlived two wives and had numerous children, some old enough to be Miaâs parents. The first thing he did was demand that Mia devote herself to serving his entire family after marriage. This was not a marriage proposal; it was a job offer for a maid. Mia had also heard that despite his age, the tycoon was notoriously promiscuous. He had ruined many of his young lovers, which included celebrities. Ellen only stopped pushing her for more matchmaking after she started dating Victor. The reason was his family background was comparable to the tycoonâs. ⌠Ellen sent Mia back to her room. Shutting the door, Mia threw herself onto the bed and rolled into the covers. Tears silently streamed down her face. She just needed to hold on a little longer. Once she received her appointment notice from the Hampshire City Art School, she could move out and escape Ellenâs control. Mia then took out her phone. Victor had been bombarding her with calls and messages. He was questioning why she was hooking up with his friend. Annoyed, Mia immediately blocked him. Nolanâs number, which she had recently added, lay quietly in her address book. It seemed like they had reached some kind of agreement, but she still felt that he might have been impulsive. He could very well forget about their arrangement. So, in the following days, Mia did not reach out to him or see him. She was busy with her new job. Ellen did not allow Mia to rest for long. She was eager to bring her along to high-society parties and business gatherings. At the events, Ellen and Mia moved through the crowds as they exchanged toasts and pleasantries. Mia was a stunning beauty, and naturally, she became the center of attention. Many wealthy businessmen and political figures gave her favorable attention. So, who said beauty was not valuable? In such environments, beauty could indeed translate into a certain amount of worth. In one evening, Ellen had secured several significant business deals. Meanwhile, Mia had exchanged contact information with many influential people. At the end of the party, Ellen suddenly pushed Mia toward a construction magnate. âMr. Tate, Iâm entrusting Mia in your care tonight. If she does anything unsatisfactory, please be patient.â âMrs. Shaw, please donât mind us. Donât worry. Once Mia has had her fun, Iâll escort her back.â Even Mia, who often played the fool, understood the implication. Despite her notorious reputation, some people were still eager to court her. However, Mia would turn many down and offend them by using her relationship with Victor as an excuse. Unfortunately, Victor had just dumped her before their engagement. She had lost any bargaining power in marriage negotiations. Rather than waste her youth and beauty, Ellen decided it would be more profitable to send her to interested executives as a form of benefit exchange. The realization sent a chill through Miaâs body. She also felt heartbroken because she could not believe that Ellen could be so cruel. âAre you tired, Mia? Why donât you sit down over there?â George Tate came closer with a smile that revealed his ulterior motives. He did not give Mia a chance to reject. Instead, he put his arm around her shoulder and guided her toward a secluded corner. His motives were glaringly obvious. His urgency had been apparent even during the party. Mia endured his advances with disgust while she quickly thought of ways to get rid of the old lecher. Once seated, George did not hesitate to place his rough hand on her behinds. Mia stood up abruptly. Her face was pale, but she held back her anger for the Shaw familyâs sake. âI need to use the restroom. I drank too much.â âAlright, go ahead. But come back quickly.â Georgeâs smile lingered as he watched her. To him, she looked like a lamb that could not escape his grasp. Mia quickly walked in the opposite direction. She did not really know where the restroom was; she just wanted to get away. However, George followed her. Alarm bells rang in Miaâs head. She started to run even though her mermaid-style evening gown made it difficult. Worried about being caught by George, Mia pushed a random door open and found herself face to face with Victor. Victor was sitting right in front of the door on a couch. He was playing cards with a few acquaintances whom Mia recognized. What made the situation more awkward was that Victorâs new girlfriend, Ivy Brent, was also present. His body tensed when he saw Mia. Sensing Victorâs discomfort, Chris Hughes followed his gaze and spotted Mia too. He was seated next to Sam Andrews, so he gave him a nudge with his elbow. âWhatâs the matter? Is it too cramped, or are you trying to flirt with me?â As Sam looked up, his words got caught in his throat as if heâd seen a ghost. âYou guys were right. She really couldnât stand being away from Victor. Look, sheâs already back,â he said. âVictor, she must be here to confront you!â Seeing Mia, Ivyâs innocent face instantly turned pale. She clung tightly to Victorâs arm, and her look of distress made it seem as if Mia was the aggressor. Victor glanced back at Mia but ignored her presence. âAre we playing or not? Letâs continue.â âVictor, Iâm not feeling well... I think I want to go home...â Ivy whispered. âWhatâs wrong? Do you need to go to the hospital?â Victor asked gently. His concern was evident. Sam could not bear to watch Ivyâs act and directly addressed Mia, âMia, Victor and Ivy are happy together. What are you doing here? Ask yourself. Werenât you also at fault for what happened between you two? Ivyâs a thousand times better for him than you ever were. Be sensible and stop bothering him.â Mia had no intention of entering upon seeing them. âYouâre all mistaken, I was just looking for someone and walked into the wrong place,â she replied coolly and stepped out without missing a beat. Right then, her primary concern was George. Distracted, she turned and bumped into someoneâs arms. Chapter 4 Miaâs reaction was almost reflexive as she pushed the person away in a panic and nearly stumbled from retreating. Nolanâs expression darkened slightly as he steadied her. âWhat happened?â He had been with the group in the private room too. Initially, he and Victor had a falling out, but it did not take long for Victor to seek him out. Victor felt that a woman like Mia was not worth losing years of brotherhood over. So when Victor came out for fun, he called Nolan to join him. To Nolanâs surprise, he ran into Mia. His gaze drifted downward, and he noted the curve of her waist. There was no question that she had an appealing figure. Her waist was slender enough for him to hold with one hand, and her skin looked like porcelain under the warm light. Her entire being seemed soft and delicate. Anyone who saw her would yearn to get a closer look. However, the fear in her eyes was evident; she was clearly scared of something. When Mia realized that it was Nolan, she stopped, and a sigh of relief escaped her lips. Just then, Victorâs voice echoed from the room. âNolan, whatâs taking you so long? Weâre all waiting!â Nolan hummed in response and released Mia before he entered the room. Mia stood frozen for a second. Nolan and Victor had been at each otherâs throats not long ago, but it seemed that all animosity had disappeared. That figured. Why would she be worth sacrificing their brotherhood, which began in their cribs? She did not deserve it. Although she had not actively pursued Nolan or tried to contact him recently, his detached demeanor suggested that he did not care. His pcraziness in bed that night contrasted sharply with his current indifference. Men like Nolan were at the pinnacle of the social pyramid. To them, brief flings were nothing more than trivial distractions and not worth any emotional investment. He had likely forgotten the promises he had made that night. Mia smiled bitterly to herself and headed toward the outdoor area of the lounge. Many guests were getting some air there. All of a sudden, someone with a strong hand pulled her into a security passageway. A man pinned her against the door while he restrained her hands. His manly, overpowering scent flooded her senses, and she was terrified. Mia tried to kick the figure before her, but he stopped her with his leg. âSo rough,â the man teased. The motion sensor light came on, and Mia saw Nolanâs face. âWhy are you here? What are you doing...?â âI stepped out for fresh air. What are you sneaking around for?â Nolan asked without changing their compromising position in the secluded space. His tone was devoid of emotion yet somehow laced with underlying desire. Mia was contemplating asking him for help when Georgeâs voice echoed down the corridor. It struck her like thunder. âMia, stop hiding. The restroom is in the other direction. Come out. Let me take you there.â Georgeâs tone made her stomach turn. She stopped pushing Nolan away and gave him a pleading look instead. She was hoping that he would not hand her over. Initially resisting physical contact, she suddenly seemed to find solace in Nolanâs arms. Seeing Mia cling to him like a frightened kitten, Nolan raised his brows in curiosity and watched the unfolding drama. He was familiar with George Tate, a material supplier who had risen to wealth in recent years. George was known for his predatory behavior toward female college students. Considering Miaâs situation at the Shaw residence, it was not hard to guess what was happening. However, unless Mia spoke up, Nolan was not inclined to intervene on his own. âSo, arenât you going out? Heâs looking for you,â he whispered close to her forehead, and his breath tickled her. Mia clenched her fists and found the humiliation unbearable. âCan you help me?â Her voice was low and desperate. Nolan replied, âYou only seek me out when you need something. Iâm not some saint or one of your on-call lackeys.â Mia took in his words for a moment. Was he calling her out for not keeping in touch? She glanced at his face with bright eyes and playfully scratched his waist with her slender hand. As Nolan looked down, his gaze intensified. His lean muscles tensed under her gentle touch as well. She then stood on tiptoes and kissed him on the lips. His lips were dry and cool. They also had a lingering scent of tobacco and mint. Mia had no plans to deceive Nolan. She knew too well that tricking him would be like walking into a trap. So, she gave him what he wanted instead. She could tell by his gaze that his intentions were not pure. With that, she kissed him carefully and grazed the surface of his lips without much skill. She sensed that Nolan was not particularly impressed as he looked at her indifferently and observed her attempt to please him. Feeling challenged, Mia wondered if she was not attractive enough for him. She intentionally leaned closer, and their lips met. When she gently bit his upper lip, she sensed his breath faltering slightly. His dark and intense eyes were filled with desire. Just then, Mia deliberately stopped and pulled away. No sooner did she step back that she felt his arms wrap around her waist. He pulled her back toward him and kissed her. This time, he took the lead with precision and skill. It did not take long for Mia to feel overwhelmed and breathless under his assertive embrace. Soon, she was leaning weakly against his chest. Nolanâs breathing was uneven as he shifted her against the door for support. His advances became fierce and relentless. When he finally released her, Miaâs lips were numb and probably swollen. For some reason, it felt like he was punishing her. Although she was breathing heavily and covered in the scent of tobacco and mint, she did not find it unpleasant. However, she did not realize how enticing she looked. The pleading gaze in her moist eyes made her appear innocent but provocative. Passion was still in the air when the doorknob suddenly turned. Nolan calmly caressed Miaâs hair and hid her by the door before he opened it. âMr. Locke?â âWhatâs with all this racket?â Nolan responded with displeasure. With an embarrassed smile, George said, âI was looking for someone. I mustâve made a mistake.â Nolan did not have to say another word for George to scurry away. He then closed the door behind him. âThank you,â Mia said. Nolan responded, âIâll take you home in a bit. Now that George has seen you with me, he probably wonât bother you anymore.â Mia nodded obediently. As Nolan stared at her, he saw a seemingly innocent girl who was actually heartless and crafty. He felt that she could manipulate a manâs emotions effortlessly while appearing clueless and innocent. Victorâs companion, Ivy, kind of reminded him of Mia. The motion-sensor light dimmed, and an eerie silence settled in the darkness. Nolanâs sharp and possessive gaze was fixed on Mia. He seemed predatory and ready to pounce at any moment. During these tense seconds, Mia could feel him staring at her. Her heart pounded, as though it was about to leap out of her chest. Nolan took a step closer, and his tall figure loomed over her. Chapter 5 Just as Mia thought Nolan was about to do something, his phone started to vibrate in his pocket. Nolan answered the call, âWhatâs up?â âWhere are you? You vanished again after you sat down. You didnât go chasing after girls, did you?â Victorâs voice was particularly clear in the quiet environment. Nolan glanced at Mia and asked meaningfully, âWhat are you worried about?â âWhat am I worried about? Donât flatter yourself. Who is worried about you?â âYouâre worried about who Iâm with?â âI donât understand what youâre talking about. Suit yourself. I had to beg you to come out anyway,â Victor grumbled as he hung up. Mia and Nolan knew him well enough to understand that he was feeling guilty. She could not help but laugh. âOthers would think that you two were the ones in a relationship.â Nolan shot her a look as the motion sensor light came back on, and the previously ambiguous atmosphere disappeared. He then headed for the door. âLetâs go.â He was back to his distant and refined self. Mia followed him and admired his tall figure from behind. Nolan dropped Mia off at the villa where she lived with Ellen and her husband. However, Mia never told Nolan that if she did not leave with George Tate tonight, Ellen would not let it slide. Ultimately, it was a family issue. Forget Nolan, even a saint would get annoyed if he had to help more than once or twice. Anyway, Mia had guessed correctly. As soon as she arrived home, Ellen ordered Mia to kneel in the study. The study was unheated, and it was freezing in the deep winter. Mia was wearing an evening dress. Plus, she had just handed over her fur shawl to the housekeeper because the indoor heating was sufficient. Unfortunately, she was shivering in the study. Feeling resigned, Mia knelt on the floor. Her body turned stiff within minutes. Although there was a carpet, her knees ached from the hard floor. The door to the study opened, and Ellen entered with a thin whip. âTake off your clothes. Itâs not worth ruining such an expensive dress to punish you.â Mia complied and removed her gown. A huge area of her skin was then exposed. She felt cold and humiliated. Ellen whipped and scolded her for over forty minutes. When Ellen was finally tired, she left Mia in the study and went off to rest in her room. She had been drinking quite a bit, so her blows were harsher than usual. Miaâs legs had gone numb by then. With trembling hands, she picked up the gown next to her and draped it over her body. She sat in the study for a long while before her legs regained some sensation. She tried to stand but fell back down. The pain from the fresh wounds on her back was excruciating. Just then, the housekeeper, Sally, entered. She was shocked. âGood heavens! How could the madam be so harsh?!â Sally approached Mia, and her eyes welled up when she saw the wounds on Miaâs back. In this household, Sally cared for her more than her own aunt, Ellen. Soon after, Sally helped Mia back to her room. Unable to hold herself up any longer, Mia collapsed onto the bed as soon as she touched it. Her body suddenly felt heavy and extremely tired, but she forced herself to stay awake a little longer. In the end, she managed to grab her phone to call Nolan. After five or six rings, he answered the call, âHello.â His deep, magnetic voice sounded in her ear. Mia gathered her strength and tried to sound normal. âNolan, itâs me, Mia. Did you get home safely?â âYes. I just got home.â âThanks for tonight... I owe you one. Letâs have dinner sometime when youâre free.â âWeâll see.â Nolan paused, then asked, âTired?â Despite Miaâs efforts to conceal it, she sounded weak and breathless. To the uninformed, it would sound like she was on the verge of falling asleep. âYeah⌠I probably drank too much tonight.â âRest early.â Nolan was always aloof and concise. Mia said goodbye and placed her phone down before she lay on her pillow. Immediately after, Sally came in with iodine and medicine. Seeing Miaâs flushed skin and cracked, bluish lips, Sally touched her forehead. âOh! Why are you so hot? I need to tell the madam that we have to visit the hospital!â âNo⌠Ah!â Mia cried out in a panic and accidentally agitated her back wound. Even though she was a prideful person, she was still frail. The pain brought tears to her eyes, and caused her to sob softly. Sally was both distressed and anxious as she hurried back. âOkay. We wonât go. Iâll apply some medicine for you, and you can take some anti-inflammatory pills later. Have a good rest after that.â Unbeknownst to them, Miaâs phone call was still active. Confused by her fever, she never hung up, and her phone had slipped next to the pillow. Nolan had waited for her to hang up first out of politeness. However, he ended up hearing Sally checking her temperature. She was sick? No wonder she sounded so low on energy. Nolan was not one to meddle, and her fever was none of his business. Yet, for some reason, he did not end the call and continued to listen. He then discovered that Mia had been beaten upon getting home. He further learned that Ellen had sent her own niece to a lecherous man and beaten her when she failed to meet their expectations. Nolan found the Shaw family quite interesting. His assistant, Ethan Lewis, was sitting in the passenger seat. At this moment, he handed Nolan a report. âMr. Locke, please look at this reportââ Nolan raised his hand to stop him, and Ethan immediately fell silent. On the phone, Miaâs faint sobs continued. Her high fever left her weak and her voice soft. âSally... it hurts so much...â âOh, dear⌠Iâm here. Iâll stay with you⌠I feel like crying too when I see you like this. Youâve grown into such a beautiful woman. How could the madam do this?â Soon, the murmuring subsided, probably because Mia had fallen asleep. However, Nolan could still hear some faint sobbing. He finally hung up. Ethan then handed Nolan the report, and he started reviewing it attentively. âWhat do you think about the Jewel Bay tourism development project?â he casually asked. Ethan was taken aback. He did not know why Nolan would suddenly bring it up. Thinking it over, he realized that the Shaw family had secured the Jewel Bay spa project. Nolan had been quite close to Mia recently, so maybe he was considering helping her? âPolicies have been leaning toward developing new areas lately. I think itâs worthwhile for our travel investment team to assess it. But if youâre thinking of helping the Shaw familyâs company, that might be an overuse of resources.â Nolan looked up with a glint in his obsidian-like eyes. âWho says Iâm helping the Shaw family? Are they even worthy?â Ethan immediately apologized, âSorry. I was wrong to assume.â He was quite frightened. In his eight years working under Nolan, he had never seen him pull strings or make compromises for a romantic interest. Ethan knew that Nolan always prioritized business. He was famously impartial and unemotional. The only person who could get him to break this rule was the Lowe familyâs heiress. Apparently, she was about to return to the country. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12974&ut | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 818 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12974&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456614420_1243316470022439_3107127672845805574_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=104&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=7lyUsuMkwZUQ7kNvgF7rm2F&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=A_0eyH__1jAQB3GbaBl1S_q&oh=00_AYAPvjoL1Siue46aSPldPbgIvA9gUiNDeVruTWKn2moJDg&oe=6719372A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,001 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
Read next chapterđ | As a junior assistant, she slept with the company's CEO. She was sure she would lose her job, but instead, her boss proposed to her: "Marry me!" ===== "Bethany, you should sleep with a handsome guy while you're still young, it's amazing! I highly recommend dabbling in something dirty while you're at it." Bethany Holt, away on a business trip and having had a little wine, lay in her hotel bed, on the verge of drifting off to sleep. However, as soon as she closed her eyes, the words of her best friend, Aimee Bates, replayed in her mind. In a month, she would turn twenty-six-and in all her years on this earth, she never had a boyfriend. She hadn't even kissed a man yet. It wasn't the first time Aimee had suggested it, but today, Bethany suddenly felt an inexplicable desire awakening inside of her. Bethany sat up in bed as this strange, new feeling grew unbearable. Subconsciously, she grabbed her phone. Having taken out her contact lenses, her vision was blurred and she couldn't see the screen clearly, but when she saw the familiar surname of her best friend, she tapped on it and sent her a message. "Send me some recommendations. I'm in the mood to watch what you just said." Seconds later, she received a reply. "?" Bethany frowned and, still drunk, joked, "Don't play ignorant! Either send me movies or send me a hot guy. I'm in Room 1501." After hitting send, Bethany waited expectantly for a reply, only to be met with crickets. Just as she was about to get out of bed for some water, the doorbell suddenly rang. She didn't think too much of it and walked right over. After all, Aimee wouldn't actually send a man to her room in the middle of the night, would she? As soon as she opened the door, Bethany went as stiff as a board. "Mr. Bates?" He seemed to have just taken a shower. His short hair was still dripping wet, and he was wearing nothing but a black silk robe. Because of his tall and strong frame, he towered over her and practically blocked the doorway. His handsome face was partially obscured in the darkness, his eyes no longer as indifferent and detached as usual. Instead, he looked like a hungry beast, staring at its prey. "Mr. Bates, what can I do for-" Before she could finish her sentence, she felt a pair of big hands grabbing the back of her head. The next second, she felt his rough lips pressed against hers. Bethany could taste the sickly sweetness of wine on his tongue. Before she could understand what was happening, she was thrown on the bed and the man climbed on top of her. It was obvious that Jonathan Bates was drunk. Otherwise, why would the CEO of Ensson Corporation come to a lowly assistant's hotel room? Bethany's first instinct was to fight back, but all of a sudden, she stopped struggling. It was her first time being with a man. Her alcohol-addled brain started to consider that maybe sleeping with such a handsome, rich, and powerful one would be a good thing. Jonathan wouldn't remember who she was, just like how he didn't remember that they were seat mates in junior high for nearly a year. As a low-level assistant at the company, Bethany rarely crossed paths with their CEO. No one would ever believe that she had slept with him. After mulling over it for a few seconds, she finally plucked up the courage to wrap her arms around his neck in the moonlight. Chapter 2 The Duality Of Jonathan Bates In the wee hours of the morning, Bethany woke up to find the man next to her still fast asleep. He was so close that his steady breath tickled her neck, making it hard for her to lie still. Oh, God! What had she done? She had slept with her boss! Eyes wide as saucers, Bethany held her breath and carefully extricated herself from his arms. Without a moment to lose, she quickly got dressed, packed her things, and ran to the hotel's front desk to check into another room. Wondering what the hell happened last night, she checked her phone and found that the dirty texts she had sent hadn't gone to her best friend, Aimee Bates. No, she had mistakenly texted someone else who had the same surname-Jonathan Bates, her boss and CEO of Ensson Corporation. A few years ago, at a junior high school reunion, the class monitor had created a chat group and asked everyone to add each other as friends. Bethany clearly remembered that it was Jonathan who had added her, but he never messaged her, and vice versa. Bethany ran her fingers through her wild hair in distress, unable to wrap her head around the fact that she had made such a stupid mistake. She checked into her new room and sat down, trying to calm herself down. Then, she decisively took out her phone and left the high school chat group. She changed her social media name from Bethany to Lily and replaced her profile picture with that of a stock photo of a random girl she downloaded from the Internet. Now, Jonathan wouldn't know who she was. She figured it wouldn't be necessary to unfriend Jonathan. And since Room 1501 was booked by the company, there were no traces that could lead to her. After taking these precautions, Bethany finally put her phone aside and went back to sleep. The next thing she knew, her alarm clock was blaring into her ears. Today, she had to go to Glora Company with her manager to discuss additional funding. The net value of the project had plummeted to its limit loss. The other party demanded replenishing, or they would sell the securities assets. In this emergency, the investment department was lucky to use Jonathan's private plane to fly to Degend for business. After washing her face and brushing her teeth, Bethany hurried to the hotel lobby with the documents in hand. Shortly after, Aimee came downstairs, muttering unhappily, "Carson Smith insisted we weren't the replenishing party, but I went to the trust company and checked the contract. His name was clearly on the copy!" "Shh, Carson's coming. Don't let him hear you," Bethany warned. Just then, she noticed a tall man surrounded by a group of people walking out of the elevator. It was Jonathan. He had changed the silk robe he wore last night into a well-tailored black suit. His thick eyebrows were slightly furrowed, his thin lips tightly pursed as he listened to his secretary's report on something. As he walked across the lobby, he didn't even spare a glance at Bethany. Jonathan's cold demeanor was well-known in the business world. His sharp, handsome face was always reserved and arrogant. He didn't talk much, but his mere presence was enough to make the very air around him drop several hundred degrees. Bethany tried her best to recall, but the man in front of her seemed so different from the one who had kissed her so passionately last night. It seemed she might have remembered it all wrong. "Oh, my God, Mr. Bates is so handsome. I would literally die to sleep with him for just one night!" Aimee whispered to Bethany excitedly, failing to notice Bethany's visible discomfort. "We both have the same surname, but why is there such a huge gap between us? Hey, earth to Bethany! Hello?" Aimee touched Bethany's arm, snapping her back to reality. Bethany immediately lowered her head, trying to avoid being seen by Jonathan. But just as he and the group of people were about to reach the exit, he stopped in his tracks and said to his secretary, "Find out who was checked into Room 1501 last night." Hearing those numbers, Bethany felt as if her legs were filled with lead. Her mind went completely blank, and she could only vaguely hear Aimee exclaim, "1501? That's where Bethany slept last night!" Aimee's loud voice drew everyone's attention, including Jonathan's. Fortunately for Bethany, he quickly lost interest and headed for the door as though nothing happened. His entourage followed, and together, they all left the hotel. As soon as they were gone, Aimee poked Bethany with an inquisitive look in her eye. "That was weird, huh? Why would Mr. Bates be interested in your room?" Aimee was puzzled. She had expected something sensational to happen, but unexpectedly, Jonathan left as though the revelation meant nothing to him. Bethany breathed a sigh of relief and replied, "My room has a good view. Maybe he wants to stay there." "Seriously?" "Don't forget he's the CEO!" Aimee shrugged. Bethany's words made sense-since she and Jonathan were from two completely different worlds, nothing could have happened between them. "Do you think a gorgeous yet cold man like Mr. Bates is good in b*d?" she suddenly asked, wriggling her brows at Bethany playfully. Bethany was speechless. Aimee's fantasies were exaggerated, but as for his size... Bethany suddenly realized her mind was drifting off to more inappropriate thoughts. She shook her head, banishing those dirty images to the back of her brain. She blamed Aimee for being a bad influence. Suddenly, Bethany froze. She quickly flipped through the documents in her hand. "Damn it." She may left the project contract in Room 1501 when she hurriedly made her escape...... ...... As a simple assistant, messaging the CEO in the dead of night to request shares of adult films was a bold move. Bethany, unsurprisingly, didn't receive any films. However, the CEO responded that, while he had no films to share, he could offer a live demonstration. After a night filled with passion, Bethany was certain she'd lose her job. But instead, her boss proposed, "Marry me. Please consider it." "Mr. Bates, you're kidding me, right?" What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &9& | LEARN_MORE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/58773322-fb_contact-e | Loving reading | https://www.facebook.com/100093132009618/ | 20,865 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | fbweb.moboreader.net | IMAGE | https://fbweb.moboreader.net/58773322-fb_contact-enj95_7-c1-0724-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=791750052879575&rawadid=120213451006000758 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/462603237_8113968738725933_1309567119299547641_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=KA41akC52sgQ7kNvgHt9WYO&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=A_0eyH__1jAQB3GbaBl1S_q&oh=00_AYCE1s9oX2PArX56gHjVCVri7_WKjPOyWZVbaC7Ho2tx_w&oe=67191426 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Loving reading | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,033 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2220326}' |
No | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đAttention! Do not read in publicďźđ | As the daughter of Alpha, I was tortured since I was 6 years old, and more tragically, I was forced to marry the demon Alpha who killed his 9 ex-girlfriends... âWhere is she?!â I hear the Beta Kyle scream. I groan and get to my feet, grabbing the cleaning basket and taking it with me. The moment he sees me, he strides towards me and his hand slices against my cheek. I donât make a sound. Years of experience has taught me to keep my mouth shut at all times. âNeah, how useless your are! You still have not cleaned the office.â He snaps. I nod my head and my hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If I could just find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make my day. âWe are trying to make a good impression on Alpha Dane. Do you not understand how important it is for us to join ourselves with his pack?!â I donât answer, I keep my eyes low so that I didnât have to look at his face. Alpha Dane, I had only ever heard rumours about him. From what I gathered, he was a ruthless man, and he was even claimed to have killed his 9 ex-girlfriends. âHe is the Alpha of Black Shadow, the biggest pack in the world, we need him!â Beta Kyle continues. He places his hands on my shoulders, digging his nails into my thinning skin, âUseless Wolf.â He mutters as he moves away. Quietly closing the door, I lean back against it, observing the already clean office. There was nothing out of place, it looked perfectly fine for a meeting with this so-called powerful Alpha. Closing my eyes, I slide down to the floor. I hated this house. I thought that when I turned 18, I could finally escape, but four years later, here I still am, a slave in my own home. Doing all the dirty tasks for my brother, Alpha Trey and the pack. While my ex mate, Beta Kyle was always reminding me of how worthless I am. The clearing of a throat makes me jump. I thought I was alone. Leaning forward, I see a handsome man sitting in a chair. A foot propped up on his knee. His short hair is dark and his eyes are a deep crimson colour, that donât quite look right. They suddenly shift to me and I throw myself back against the door. Shrinking down to the ground. âIs this the way you greet all Alphaâs?â His deep voice rumbles through the room, an edge of amusement to his tone. âIâm sorry.â I whisper, getting to my feet. âIâŚI thought I was alone.â I had no idea who he was but I could feel the power radiating off of him, even without my Wolf. âCome forward.â He orders. I do as Iâm told. Allowing him to see me properly and I am met with narrowed crimson eyes. I close my own eyes, expecting the worst. âYou smell funny. Yet you are a Wolf, correct?â My head moved up and down, though I couldnât tell how he was going to react. Most laughed when they discovered the truth about me. âI would prefer it if you spoke to me.â He growls, âIâm not in the mood to play games.â âYes.â I whisper. âI amâŚI am a Wolf.â I couldnât help but think of all the punishments I was going to have to endure. A whipping maybe? Starvation for another week? I wasnât sure how much more my body could take. âHow is it possible for you to not know I was in the room? You should have scented me.â âIâŚ..â I hated the question. âI havenât got all day!â He takes a swig from his drink. I knew why I couldnât scent him. I knew why I hadnât been aware of his presence, but telling people why was not something I ever liked to do. They never hear my side of the story. All they do is accept Alpha Trey's word as the truth. âYou should open your eyes when you are talking to someone. Has your Alpha not taught you anything?â His deep voice sends a shiver through me. Slowly, I open my eyes and lower them. There was no way I was making direct eye contact. âMy Wolf abilities were bound.â âWhy?â If this is the Alpha that my brother is supposed to be meeting with, I knew I could screw everything up for him by saying too much. âIt was a punishment.â âFor what?â His deep voice rumbles through me. âFor killing my parents.â I whispered. At this moment, the door swings open abruptly and my brother screeches at me âNeah, what are you doing in my office?!" He then turns to the crimson eyed man. âI am so sorry that my sister is bothering you, Alpha Dane." Crap, it was him... | LEARN_MORE | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& | New world publications | https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ | 3,723 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | wwwedb.com | DCO | https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456218136_1435320253852544_8732030706373297615_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=FE4XY42J3MQQ7kNvgGPtgg0&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=A_0eyH__1jAQB3GbaBl1S_q&oh=00_AYDIeVEHAztOn7cFl__QybVc-UgVl9Mg_g9Zx9gPUJSx8A&oe=6719200F | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | New world publications | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,222,052 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2222020}' |
Yes | 2024-10-19 02:27 | active | 1652 | 0 |
![]() |
đRead the next chaptersđ | Chapter 1 Everyone called her a party girl. This time, however, Mia Shaw finally met her match. The whole city was waiting to see her make a fool of herself. There was a dinner party following her breakup with her ex. Unexpectedly, she hooked up with the most esteemed man in Hampshire City at this party. He was the perfect husband, but he had one fatal flaw. ⌠The ballroom was dazzling with lights and elegantly dressed guests. In the southeastern corner, Victor Gray was chatting up a beautiful woman. He had his arms wrapped around her, and he was completely unaware of Mia approaching. âVictor, I heard you and Mia have set a date for your marriage. Congratulations!â âI never said Iâd marry her. Now that sheâs done fooling around, she wants a decent man to settle down with? Itâs wishful thinking on her part.â His friend was surprised. âHavenât you been pursuing her for years?â âI was only pretending to be in love with her.â Victor caressed the womanâs waist and replied indifferently. âEveryone else has had their fun with her. Iâm not about to marry someone like that.â Mia was shocked. Victor had always appeared devoted to her. Although she was not particularly fond of him, she had taken their engagement seriously and even announced it herself. She usually rejected others, but it turned out that she could be rejected too. Right then, someone noticed her and started signaling to Victor. Victor received the cue and turned around. He panicked for a moment when he saw Mia. But he quickly hid it and pretended to be unbothered. âSince youâve heard everything, letâs clear things up. I invited you here to break up with you, not announce our wedding. Ivyâs conceived, and I need to accept responsibility.â The crowd turned their eyes toward them. There was surprise, but mostly jeers. After all, Mia getting dumped was quite the show. Despite her tarnished reputation, she had been lucky enough that the Gray family was willing to accept her. Without Victor, who else would want her? No matter how enchanting she was, everyone still treated her like dirt. Mia remained composed and showed no reaction. She then scanned the room until her gaze landed on a handsome man in the corner. She was looking at Nolan Locke, the Locke familyâs wealthy and aloof heir. This family had a century-old empire and held a near-royal status in Hampshire City. Even the Gray family had to respect them. She gracefully walked up to Nolan in her champagne-colored gown. Mia had such refined beauty that it was as if she had been sculpted by a master. Nolan assessed her with calm eyes as she wrapped her fingers around his tie and gave it a few twists. He narrowed his eyes but did not stop her. She leaned in and whispered, âActually, I had my eye on you first, but I couldnât resist Victorâs relentless pursuit. Now that weâve broken up, Iâd like to pursue you. Is that okay?â Victor was the first to react. He nearly jumped up and scoffed loudly. âMia, are you crazy? Trying to salvage your dignity by going after Nolan? Heâs a good friend of mine. What makes you think heâd give you any attention?â Mia ignored him as if his words were just white noise. Her shimmering eyes stayed fixed on Nolan as she waited quietly for his response. There was a hint of interest in his dark eyes, and he smirked. âSure. You can pursue me. Donât mind him.â As soon as he spoke, the room erupted into murmurs. Even the boastful Victor was taken aback. Mia was not confident that Nolan would entertain her advances. The Gray and Locke families were family friends, so Nolan would likely reject her. If he did that, she would also be humiliated. However, she did not care. Dignity was something she had lost long ago. She suddenly expressed interest in Nolan just to spite Victor. She released Nolanâs tie and prepared to leave. However, he grabbed her waist and pulled her close with his hand firmly on her back. His deep voice was full of allure. âDidnât you say you wanted to pursue me? Leaving already?â Mia frowned slightly. Nolan was not playing by the rules and being even more proactive than she had expected. She only mentioned that she would pursue him, not that she would start immediately. But since they were still in public, she had to keep up the act. Her fingers crawled up his neck as she murmured shyly, âThere are too many people here.â âAlright. Letâs go somewhere less crowded,â Nolan easily agreed and surprised Mia with his compliance. He wrapped his arm around her as everyone watched. Victorâs shouting followed them while they exited the ballroom, but Nolan ignored him. Eventually, Victor caught up to them. âNolan, youâre taking this joke too far.â Nolan turned back calmly. âWerenât you just playing with her? You wronged her first, so donât put the blame on others. Iâm taking her away.â With that, he led Mia downstairs. Mia felt a bit awkward. âMr. Locke, thank you for helping me out.â Nolan had always been Miaâs type, both in terms of appearance and personal qualities. When she first met the men, she was indeed more interested in Nolan. But Victor announced that he wanted to woo her, so all his friends avoided her to prevent any misunderstandings. Otherwise, she might have actually pursued Nolan herself. Nolan looked at her. His affectionate and inviting eyes seemed to whisper sweet nothings. âDo you really want to pursue me?â âMaybe Iâll give it a shot. Thereâs no one I canât win over,â Mia replied. Nolan smiled faintly. Perhaps he was amused, or he found her amusing. âPursuing me wonât be easy.â âIâm not afraid of a challenge.â âThen, show me your sincerity.â Mia looked at him in confusion. Forty minutes later, she understood what he meant by âsincerity.â He had taken her to a hotel. As they fell onto the large bed, Mia felt a little disoriented. What was this? She had never heard of showing sincerity by starting in bed. This sequence seemed illogical. By the time she realized what was happening, there was no turning back. The soft and clean sheets beneath them creased and ruffled. Nolan had a reputation for being chaste and unmotivated by lust. Meanwhile, Mia was a reputed vixen of the city. But at that moment, she felt that Nolan played the game far better than she did. In reality, Mia was still innocent, and Nolan was her first. Midway through, he seemed to realize this as well, and surprise flashed in his eyes. âYouâre...â Feeling embarrassed, Mia pretended to be impatient. âAre we doing this or not? If we are, hurry up. I donât like men who talk too much in bed.â Nolan raised an eyebrow in amusement, and an unreadable smile crossed his face. After a heated night, Mia woke up late the next morning. But Nolan was nowhere to be seen in the room. Her clothes were hanging neatly on the couch beside the bed and within easy reach. Last night, they had been scattered all over the floor. So, Nolan probably tidied the place when he got up. Chapter 2 After Mia changed her clothes, Nolan returned to the room. Mia was slightly startled. âI thought you had already left.â Nolan remained silent, and his gaze fell on the spot where she had slept. The white sheets bore a red stain. Nolanâs expression was complex. Rumors had painted Mia as a woman who had been with countless men, and everyone thought that her dignity had been tarnished long ago. He never expected her to be the first time. Mia thought he might be worried that she would use this to cling to him. So, she spoke first, âDonât worry. I have no hang-ups, and I wonât expect you to take responsibility. This was my choice.â Sleeping with a handsome man like Nolan did not feel like a loss to her. His skills had matched his looks, and she had enjoyed it. It seemed fair. Nolan was about to say something but paused. He chose his words carefully before he finally said, âA single night doesnât really mean anything.â Mia nodded in understanding, as this was within her expectations. Nolan called for room service, and soon, they delivered a lavish breakfast spread. Both of them sat at the table and ate in an oddly silent atmosphere. Mia accidentally smeared some of the sandwich she was eating on her lips. She was about to wipe it off with a napkin when Nolan reached across and steadied her chin with one hand. Then, he wiped the smudge off with the thumb of his other hand. It was a moment of closeness in their sober state. Unexpectedly, Mia felt her face warm up. âMia, once you start pursuing me, you canât pursue anyone else,â Nolan said as he looked intently at her. Mia was taken aback. âWhy not?â Nolan frowned, and he was puzzled by her question. Mia explained, âIf Iâm the one pursuing, the initiative is mine. If I canât win you over, arenât I allowed to give up and pursue someone else?â Her logic stumped Nolan for a moment. Mia added, âBesides, Iâve decided not to pursue you anymore.â Nolan furrowed his brows even further, and his demeanor became cold. âWhat did you say?â âWeâve already slept together before Iâve had the chance to pursue you properly. Do I really need to continue?â Mia spread her hands. Nolan could not help but laugh, albeit bitterly. He remembered the rumors painting Mia as a party girl. She truly lived up to her reputation. âSo, you pursue someone just to sleep with them?â The usually aloof Nolan Locke was almost driven to say something as undignified as âEven if you have my body, you wonât have my heart.â âNot really,â Mia admitted and felt a bit guilty. âBut itâs not like youâd actually marry me.â âWho says itâs impossible?â Nolan replied slowly. Mia was stunned. Although the Shaw family was part of the elite, it did not compare to the century-old, prestigious families like the Gray and Locke families. The Locke family was influential in real estate, tourism, energy, finance, and more. Mentioning the Locke family in Hampshire City alone could shake the ground. Families clamored to align themselves with the Locke family through marriage. The Shaw family did not come close. Would the Locke family really consider her? Was Nolan just playing with her? Mia put down her cutlery. âIâm full. Could you please take me home, Mr. Locke?â Nolan was frustrated, and he felt that she was not taking him seriously. After a drag, he nonchalantly said, âAnd here I thought I had met someone interesting. Miss Shaw, you might as well go back on your own. Iâm not headed that way.â Mia picked up her bag and stood up gracefully. âMr. Locke, donât bother trying to provoke me. I may not have the best reputation, but I have my principles. I wonât be anyoneâs mistress.â Miaâs aunt, Ellen Shaw, had pressured her to marry a man over seventy to escape her circumstances, but she was not about to jump from one cage into another. She sought an equal relationship. Only then would she have the freedom to pursue what she wanted. Mia turned to leave, but as she opened the door, Nolanâs voice rang out. âI canât promise Iâll marry you, but becoming an official couple isnât out of the question.â Mia stopped in her tracks. She really needed to improve her status, especially if she wanted to be with someone as influential as Nolan. Only then would she not be treated like a commodity or be handed out to anyone who showed interest. Ellen had tolerated her past relationship with Victor because of the Gray familyâs status. Since Victor had broken off their engagement, Mia was worried about facing Ellen at home. Her suggestion for Nolan to drive her home had also been strategic. If Ellen saw that Mia had gotten with Nolan, she would likely be less critical. âReally? Iâll hold you to it, then.â Mia turned around with gleaming eyes. âI donât have many virtues, but the one I do have is loyalty!â Mia knew that it would be tough. However, with Nolanâs heart softening, she was no longer afraid about not winning him over. She may not have much experience in pursuing others, but she was well-versed in being pursued. With sincere intentions, she was sure that she could turn this small opening into a real opportunity. Nolan began to walk away. After a few steps, he noticed that Mia had not followed, so he turned back with a frown. âArenât you coming?â Mia feigned ignorance. âSo, weâre headed the same way now?â Nolan did not reply this time and just continued walking. Bouncing after him, she caught up and entered the elevator with him. Her exquisite face carried a hint of playfulness. Nolanâs expression remained impassive, and his tall figure exuded a silent coldness. However, he seemed less unapproachable next to the woman with a bright, blooming smile. Eventually, Nolan dropped Mia off at her home. The car glided smoothly up to the front of the villa without any attempt to hide. âThank you for the ride, Mr. Locke,â Mia said as she got out of the car before bowing slightly in gratitude. âIt was on my way,â Nolan replied. The car window rolled up and obscured his face behind the privacy glass. Then, the car pulled away. Mia stood there and remained polite as she watched him drive off. She took her time to enter the house. While she bent down to change her shoes, a fierce female voice bombarded her with questions, âWhere were you last night? You didnât come home! And who dropped you off?!â Ellen was standing at the center of the living room, and her stern gaze was fixed on Mia. Miaâs mother had passed away early on, while her father never provided for her. He was mostly reliant on his brother and sister-in-lawâs charity throughout his life. As they did not have children of their own, Miaâs father had shamelessly exchanged her for a substantial sum of money. Ellen had been meticulous in Miaâs upbringing by making her attend classes for piano, cello, dance, horse riding, and golf. Everything a lady of a wealthy household should know, Mia had to learn. Everyone praised Ellen for her generosity toward a child who was not her own. But only Mia knew that Ellen saw her as a valuable asset. She was to be groomed for an advantageous marriage. As such, Ellen was particularly strict with Mia; she allowed her almost no personal freedom. âIt was Nolan Locke, the Locke familyâs eldest son.â At the mention of Nolanâs name, Ellenâs face immediately lit up. âThe heir to the Locke Group, Nolan Locke?â Mia nodded quietly. Ellen quickly dropped the subject. Mia scoffed inwardly. Ellen did not truly care whether she was fooling around with men. All that mattered to Ellen was the status of the man involved and whether he could be of benefit to her career. Chapter 3 âTell me. Whatâs going on with you and Victor?â âWe broke up. He initiated it.â âThe engagement announcement was already made public. Do you think this is some childâs play?â âHe cheated, and that woman is carrying his child. Itâs better this way. I donât want to have anything to do with him anymore.â âUseless!â Ellen cursed. However, it was unclear if she was scolding Victor for his lack of morals or Mia for failing to secure her man. Ellen grew increasingly angry. She strode over to Mia and poked her temple. âDo you really think you can level up to the Locke family? What makes you think someone like Nolan Locke would care for your background? Iâll lay it out for you now. Either you make up with Victor and continue with the wedding or start accompanying me to social events again and prepare for an arranged marriage.â The mention of an arranged marriage made Mia shiver. Previously, Ellen had mentioned a property tycoon in his seventies. The man had outlived two wives and had numerous children, some old enough to be Miaâs parents. The first thing he did was demand that Mia devote herself to serving his entire family after marriage. This was not a marriage proposal; it was a job offer for a maid. Mia had also heard that despite his age, the tycoon was notoriously promiscuous. He had ruined many of his young lovers, which included celebrities. Ellen only stopped pushing her for more matchmaking after she started dating Victor. The reason was his family background was comparable to the tycoonâs. ⌠Ellen sent Mia back to her room. Shutting the door, Mia threw herself onto the bed and rolled into the covers. Tears silently streamed down her face. She just needed to hold on a little longer. Once she received her appointment notice from the Hampshire City Art School, she could move out and escape Ellenâs control. Mia then took out her phone. Victor had been bombarding her with calls and messages. He was questioning why she was hooking up with his friend. Annoyed, Mia immediately blocked him. Nolanâs number, which she had recently added, lay quietly in her address book. It seemed like they had reached some kind of agreement, but she still felt that he might have been impulsive. He could very well forget about their arrangement. So, in the following days, Mia did not reach out to him or see him. She was busy with her new job. Ellen did not allow Mia to rest for long. She was eager to bring her along to high-society parties and business gatherings. At the events, Ellen and Mia moved through the crowds as they exchanged toasts and pleasantries. Mia was a stunning beauty, and naturally, she became the center of attention. Many wealthy businessmen and political figures gave her favorable attention. So, who said beauty was not valuable? In such environments, beauty could indeed translate into a certain amount of worth. In one evening, Ellen had secured several significant business deals. Meanwhile, Mia had exchanged contact information with many influential people. At the end of the party, Ellen suddenly pushed Mia toward a construction magnate. âMr. Tate, Iâm entrusting Mia in your care tonight. If she does anything unsatisfactory, please be patient.â âMrs. Shaw, please donât mind us. Donât worry. Once Mia has had her fun, Iâll escort her back.â Even Mia, who often played the fool, understood the implication. Despite her notorious reputation, some people were still eager to court her. However, Mia would turn many down and offend them by using her relationship with Victor as an excuse. Unfortunately, Victor had just dumped her before their engagement. She had lost any bargaining power in marriage negotiations. Rather than waste her youth and beauty, Ellen decided it would be more profitable to send her to interested executives as a form of benefit exchange. The realization sent a chill through Miaâs body. She also felt heartbroken because she could not believe that Ellen could be so cruel. âAre you tired, Mia? Why donât you sit down over there?â George Tate came closer with a smile that revealed his ulterior motives. He did not give Mia a chance to reject. Instead, he put his arm around her shoulder and guided her toward a secluded corner. His motives were glaringly obvious. His urgency had been apparent even during the party. Mia endured his advances with disgust while she quickly thought of ways to get rid of the old lecher. Once seated, George did not hesitate to place his rough hand on her behinds. Mia stood up abruptly. Her face was pale, but she held back her anger for the Shaw familyâs sake. âI need to use the restroom. I drank too much.â âAlright, go ahead. But come back quickly.â Georgeâs smile lingered as he watched her. To him, she looked like a lamb that could not escape his grasp. Mia quickly walked in the opposite direction. She did not really know where the restroom was; she just wanted to get away. However, George followed her. Alarm bells rang in Miaâs head. She started to run even though her mermaid-style evening gown made it difficult. Worried about being caught by George, Mia pushed a random door open and found herself face to face with Victor. Victor was sitting right in front of the door on a couch. He was playing cards with a few acquaintances whom Mia recognized. What made the situation more awkward was that Victorâs new girlfriend, Ivy Brent, was also present. His body tensed when he saw Mia. Sensing Victorâs discomfort, Chris Hughes followed his gaze and spotted Mia too. He was seated next to Sam Andrews, so he gave him a nudge with his elbow. âWhatâs the matter? Is it too cramped, or are you trying to flirt with me?â As Sam looked up, his words got caught in his throat as if heâd seen a ghost. âYou guys were right. She really couldnât stand being away from Victor. Look, sheâs already back,â he said. âVictor, she must be here to confront you!â Seeing Mia, Ivyâs innocent face instantly turned pale. She clung tightly to Victorâs arm, and her look of distress made it seem as if Mia was the aggressor. Victor glanced back at Mia but ignored her presence. âAre we playing or not? Letâs continue.â âVictor, Iâm not feeling well... I think I want to go home...â Ivy whispered. âWhatâs wrong? Do you need to go to the hospital?â Victor asked gently. His concern was evident. Sam could not bear to watch Ivyâs act and directly addressed Mia, âMia, Victor and Ivy are happy together. What are you doing here? Ask yourself. Werenât you also at fault for what happened between you two? Ivyâs a thousand times better for him than you ever were. Be sensible and stop bothering him.â Mia had no intention of entering upon seeing them. âYouâre all mistaken, I was just looking for someone and walked into the wrong place,â she replied coolly and stepped out without missing a beat. Right then, her primary concern was George. Distracted, she turned and bumped into someoneâs arms. Chapter 4 Miaâs reaction was almost reflexive as she pushed the person away in a panic and nearly stumbled from retreating. Nolanâs expression darkened slightly as he steadied her. âWhat happened?â He had been with the group in the private room too. Initially, he and Victor had a falling out, but it did not take long for Victor to seek him out. Victor felt that a woman like Mia was not worth losing years of brotherhood over. So when Victor came out for fun, he called Nolan to join him. To Nolanâs surprise, he ran into Mia. His gaze drifted downward, and he noted the curve of her waist. There was no question that she had an appealing figure. Her waist was slender enough for him to hold with one hand, and her skin looked like porcelain under the warm light. Her entire being seemed soft and delicate. Anyone who saw her would yearn to get a closer look. However, the fear in her eyes was evident; she was clearly scared of something. When Mia realized that it was Nolan, she stopped, and a sigh of relief escaped her lips. Just then, Victorâs voice echoed from the room. âNolan, whatâs taking you so long? Weâre all waiting!â Nolan hummed in response and released Mia before he entered the room. Mia stood frozen for a second. Nolan and Victor had been at each otherâs throats not long ago, but it seemed that all animosity had disappeared. That figured. Why would she be worth sacrificing their brotherhood, which began in their cribs? She did not deserve it. Although she had not actively pursued Nolan or tried to contact him recently, his detached demeanor suggested that he did not care. His pcraziness in bed that night contrasted sharply with his current indifference. Men like Nolan were at the pinnacle of the social pyramid. To them, brief flings were nothing more than trivial distractions and not worth any emotional investment. He had likely forgotten the promises he had made that night. Mia smiled bitterly to herself and headed toward the outdoor area of the lounge. Many guests were getting some air there. All of a sudden, someone with a strong hand pulled her into a security passageway. A man pinned her against the door while he restrained her hands. His manly, overpowering scent flooded her senses, and she was terrified. Mia tried to kick the figure before her, but he stopped her with his leg. âSo rough,â the man teased. The motion sensor light came on, and Mia saw Nolanâs face. âWhy are you here? What are you doing...?â âI stepped out for fresh air. What are you sneaking around for?â Nolan asked without changing their compromising position in the secluded space. His tone was devoid of emotion yet somehow laced with underlying desire. Mia was contemplating asking him for help when Georgeâs voice echoed down the corridor. It struck her like thunder. âMia, stop hiding. The restroom is in the other direction. Come out. Let me take you there.â Georgeâs tone made her stomach turn. She stopped pushing Nolan away and gave him a pleading look instead. She was hoping that he would not hand her over. Initially resisting physical contact, she suddenly seemed to find solace in Nolanâs arms. Seeing Mia cling to him like a frightened kitten, Nolan raised his brows in curiosity and watched the unfolding drama. He was familiar with George Tate, a material supplier who had risen to wealth in recent years. George was known for his predatory behavior toward female college students. Considering Miaâs situation at the Shaw residence, it was not hard to guess what was happening. However, unless Mia spoke up, Nolan was not inclined to intervene on his own. âSo, arenât you going out? Heâs looking for you,â he whispered close to her forehead, and his breath tickled her. Mia clenched her fists and found the humiliation unbearable. âCan you help me?â Her voice was low and desperate. Nolan replied, âYou only seek me out when you need something. Iâm not some saint or one of your on-call lackeys.â Mia took in his words for a moment. Was he calling her out for not keeping in touch? She glanced at his face with bright eyes and playfully scratched his waist with her slender hand. As Nolan looked down, his gaze intensified. His lean muscles tensed under her gentle touch as well. She then stood on tiptoes and kissed him on the lips. His lips were dry and cool. They also had a lingering scent of tobacco and mint. Mia had no plans to deceive Nolan. She knew too well that tricking him would be like walking into a trap. So, she gave him what he wanted instead. She could tell by his gaze that his intentions were not pure. With that, she kissed him carefully and grazed the surface of his lips without much skill. She sensed that Nolan was not particularly impressed as he looked at her indifferently and observed her attempt to please him. Feeling challenged, Mia wondered if she was not attractive enough for him. She intentionally leaned closer, and their lips met. When she gently bit his upper lip, she sensed his breath faltering slightly. His dark and intense eyes were filled with desire. Just then, Mia deliberately stopped and pulled away. No sooner did she step back that she felt his arms wrap around her waist. He pulled her back toward him and kissed her. This time, he took the lead with precision and skill. It did not take long for Mia to feel overwhelmed and breathless under his assertive embrace. Soon, she was leaning weakly against his chest. Nolanâs breathing was uneven as he shifted her against the door for support. His advances became fierce and relentless. When he finally released her, Miaâs lips were numb and probably swollen. For some reason, it felt like he was punishing her. Although she was breathing heavily and covered in the scent of tobacco and mint, she did not find it unpleasant. However, she did not realize how enticing she looked. The pleading gaze in her moist eyes made her appear innocent but provocative. Passion was still in the air when the doorknob suddenly turned. Nolan calmly caressed Miaâs hair and hid her by the door before he opened it. âMr. Locke?â âWhatâs with all this racket?â Nolan responded with displeasure. With an embarrassed smile, George said, âI was looking for someone. I mustâve made a mistake.â Nolan did not have to say another word for George to scurry away. He then closed the door behind him. âThank you,â Mia said. Nolan responded, âIâll take you home in a bit. Now that George has seen you with me, he probably wonât bother you anymore.â Mia nodded obediently. As Nolan stared at her, he saw a seemingly innocent girl who was actually heartless and crafty. He felt that she could manipulate a manâs emotions effortlessly while appearing clueless and innocent. Victorâs companion, Ivy, kind of reminded him of Mia. The motion-sensor light dimmed, and an eerie silence settled in the darkness. Nolanâs sharp and possessive gaze was fixed on Mia. He seemed predatory and ready to pounce at any moment. During these tense seconds, Mia could feel him staring at her. Her heart pounded, as though it was about to leap out of her chest. Nolan took a step closer, and his tall figure loomed over her. Chapter 5 Just as Mia thought Nolan was about to do something, his phone started to vibrate in his pocket. Nolan answered the call, âWhatâs up?â âWhere are you? You vanished again after you sat down. You didnât go chasing after girls, did you?â Victorâs voice was particularly clear in the quiet environment. Nolan glanced at Mia and asked meaningfully, âWhat are you worried about?â âWhat am I worried about? Donât flatter yourself. Who is worried about you?â âYouâre worried about who Iâm with?â âI donât understand what youâre talking about. Suit yourself. I had to beg you to come out anyway,â Victor grumbled as he hung up. Mia and Nolan knew him well enough to understand that he was feeling guilty. She could not help but laugh. âOthers would think that you two were the ones in a relationship.â Nolan shot her a look as the motion sensor light came back on, and the previously ambiguous atmosphere disappeared. He then headed for the door. âLetâs go.â He was back to his distant and refined self. Mia followed him and admired his tall figure from behind. Nolan dropped Mia off at the villa where she lived with Ellen and her husband. However, Mia never told Nolan that if she did not leave with George Tate tonight, Ellen would not let it slide. Ultimately, it was a family issue. Forget Nolan, even a saint would get annoyed if he had to help more than once or twice. Anyway, Mia had guessed correctly. As soon as she arrived home, Ellen ordered Mia to kneel in the study. The study was unheated, and it was freezing in the deep winter. Mia was wearing an evening dress. Plus, she had just handed over her fur shawl to the housekeeper because the indoor heating was sufficient. Unfortunately, she was shivering in the study. Feeling resigned, Mia knelt on the floor. Her body turned stiff within minutes. Although there was a carpet, her knees ached from the hard floor. The door to the study opened, and Ellen entered with a thin whip. âTake off your clothes. Itâs not worth ruining such an expensive dress to punish you.â Mia complied and removed her gown. A huge area of her skin was then exposed. She felt cold and humiliated. Ellen whipped and scolded her for over forty minutes. When Ellen was finally tired, she left Mia in the study and went off to rest in her room. She had been drinking quite a bit, so her blows were harsher than usual. Miaâs legs had gone numb by then. With trembling hands, she picked up the gown next to her and draped it over her body. She sat in the study for a long while before her legs regained some sensation. She tried to stand but fell back down. The pain from the fresh wounds on her back was excruciating. Just then, the housekeeper, Sally, entered. She was shocked. âGood heavens! How could the madam be so harsh?!â Sally approached Mia, and her eyes welled up when she saw the wounds on Miaâs back. In this household, Sally cared for her more than her own aunt, Ellen. Soon after, Sally helped Mia back to her room. Unable to hold herself up any longer, Mia collapsed onto the bed as soon as she touched it. Her body suddenly felt heavy and extremely tired, but she forced herself to stay awake a little longer. In the end, she managed to grab her phone to call Nolan. After five or six rings, he answered the call, âHello.â His deep, magnetic voice sounded in her ear. Mia gathered her strength and tried to sound normal. âNolan, itâs me, Mia. Did you get home safely?â âYes. I just got home.â âThanks for tonight... I owe you one. Letâs have dinner sometime when youâre free.â âWeâll see.â Nolan paused, then asked, âTired?â Despite Miaâs efforts to conceal it, she sounded weak and breathless. To the uninformed, it would sound like she was on the verge of falling asleep. âYeah⌠I probably drank too much tonight.â âRest early.â Nolan was always aloof and concise. Mia said goodbye and placed her phone down before she lay on her pillow. Immediately after, Sally came in with iodine and medicine. Seeing Miaâs flushed skin and cracked, bluish lips, Sally touched her forehead. âOh! Why are you so hot? I need to tell the madam that we have to visit the hospital!â âNo⌠Ah!â Mia cried out in a panic and accidentally agitated her back wound. Even though she was a prideful person, she was still frail. The pain brought tears to her eyes, and caused her to sob softly. Sally was both distressed and anxious as she hurried back. âOkay. We wonât go. Iâll apply some medicine for you, and you can take some anti-inflammatory pills later. Have a good rest after that.â Unbeknownst to them, Miaâs phone call was still active. Confused by her fever, she never hung up, and her phone had slipped next to the pillow. Nolan had waited for her to hang up first out of politeness. However, he ended up hearing Sally checking her temperature. She was sick? No wonder she sounded so low on energy. Nolan was not one to meddle, and her fever was none of his business. Yet, for some reason, he did not end the call and continued to listen. He then discovered that Mia had been beaten upon getting home. He further learned that Ellen had sent her own niece to a lecherous man and beaten her when she failed to meet their expectations. Nolan found the Shaw family quite interesting. His assistant, Ethan Lewis, was sitting in the passenger seat. At this moment, he handed Nolan a report. âMr. Locke, please look at this reportââ Nolan raised his hand to stop him, and Ethan immediately fell silent. On the phone, Miaâs faint sobs continued. Her high fever left her weak and her voice soft. âSally... it hurts so much...â âOh, dear⌠Iâm here. Iâll stay with you⌠I feel like crying too when I see you like this. Youâve grown into such a beautiful woman. How could the madam do this?â Soon, the murmuring subsided, probably because Mia had fallen asleep. However, Nolan could still hear some faint sobbing. He finally hung up. Ethan then handed Nolan the report, and he started reviewing it attentively. âWhat do you think about the Jewel Bay tourism development project?â he casually asked. Ethan was taken aback. He did not know why Nolan would suddenly bring it up. Thinking it over, he realized that the Shaw family had secured the Jewel Bay spa project. Nolan had been quite close to Mia recently, so maybe he was considering helping her? âPolicies have been leaning toward developing new areas lately. I think itâs worthwhile for our travel investment team to assess it. But if youâre thinking of helping the Shaw familyâs company, that might be an overuse of resources.â Nolan looked up with a glint in his obsidian-like eyes. âWho says Iâm helping the Shaw family? Are they even worthy?â Ethan immediately apologized, âSorry. I was wrong to assume.â He was quite frightened. In his eight years working under Nolan, he had never seen him pull strings or make compromises for a romantic interest. Ethan knew that Nolan always prioritized business. He was famously impartial and unemotional. The only person who could get him to break this rule was the Lowe familyâs heiress. Apparently, she was about to return to the country. | LEARN_MORE | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12974&ut | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 818 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | beokn.com | DCO | https://beokn.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12974&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent.fagc3-2.fna.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453325400_1720649698723293_5960020650519215422_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=YGea-kZ5Al8Q7kNvgGzYm1T&_nc_ht=scontent.fagc3-2.fna&_nc_gid=A_0eyH__1jAQB3GbaBl1S_q&oh=00_AYBEtSFYdxxKGQohvgivCtRHWD6Kcd22TLva0ne-3_c6oA&oe=67192D40 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete |
Page 9 of 135, showing 20 record(s) out of 2,688 total